Skip to main content

Full text of "A history of the fishes of the British Islands"

See other formats


B18LI0THEEK 



2't.'^ cj\>{ . 






V 









A 


HISTORY 


OP THE 

FISHES 

OP THE 

BRITISH ISLANDS. 


BY JONATHAN COUCH, F.L.S. 


VOL. 1. 

CONTAINING FrPTY-SEVEN COLOXTHED PLATES, 
FROM DRAWINGS BY THE AUTHOR, 


The works of the Lord are great, sought out of all them that have 
pleasure therein.— P salm cxi, v. 2. 



LONDON: 

GEORGE BELL & SONS, YORK STREET, COVENT GARDEN. 




M DCCC I.XXVII. 



CONTENTS. 


N’urse Hound 

I^oQgh Hound 

Waclc-uiouthed Dogfish . 

Six-gillod Shark 

White Shark 

Blue Shark 

Thrasher 

Porbeagle 

Toper . . . . 

Smooth Hound 
Picked Dog 
Spinous Shark . 
Greenland Shark . 
Basking Shark 
Hashleigti Shark 
Broad -headed Grazer 
Hammer-head 
Monkfish . 

Skate 

Long-nosed Skate 
Plapper Skate 
Burton Skate 
Thornback Ray- 
Starry Ray 
Spotted Ray . 

Painted Ray- 
Bordered Ray 
Cuckoo Ray 
Sandy Ray 
Shagreen Ray . 

Torpedo 


PAGE 

11 

14 

18 

21 

25 

28 

37 

41 

45 

47 

49 

54 

57 

60 

67 

68 
70 
73 
87 
93 
95 
97 
99 

103 

104 
107 

no 

112 

115 

117 

119 


IV 


CONTENTS. 


Sting Eay 
Eagle Eay 
Ox Eay 
Arctic Chimsera 
Common Sturgeon 
Huso 

Three-spined Stickleback 
Tinker 

Fifteen-spined Stickleback 
Eerch 

Bass .... 

Buff ... 

Comber .... 

Dusky Perch 

Stone Bass 

Dentex 

Mendole 

Surmullet . 

Bed Mullet 
Old Wife . 

Boguo .... 
Becker 

Couch’s Sea Bream 
Erythrinus 
Spanish Bream 
Common Sea Bream . 
Short Sea Bream 
Gilthead 


PAGE 

130 

135 

139 

145 

157 

163 

167 

176 

180 

185 

189 

193 

195 

198 

200 

203 

206 

209 

217 

222 

225 

228 

231 

233 

235 

237 

241 

243 


PREFACE. 


In the work on British Fishes now presented to the 
public, it has been the endeavour of the Author to give such 
S’- representation of each of the species which has at any time 
been met with in the British Islands, either as straggling 
Visitors or more permanent residents, as shall render it easy 
to be recognised by any one; as also to assign it its 
proper place in a scientific arrangement; and of these recorded 
in our volumes it is to be observed that there are several 
■which are now for the first time noticed as having been 
obtained in Britain. 

A coloured likeness is for the most part necessary for this 
purpose; and those which are now presented to the notice of 
the reader, with very few exceptions, that are particularly 
pointed out, possess the advantage of having been derived 
from examples that had been but newly drawn from their 
native element, with their native colours fresh upon them; 
while those species which from their rarity could not be 
procured under such circumstances, are produced in such a 
manner as not to be disguised by imaginary adorning. The 
descriptions also have been carefully attended to, and with 
the plates will leave little to be desired in illustration of this 
portion of the subject. 


VI 


PREFACE. 


But beyond this it has been deemed of special importance 
to give, with as much precision as possible, an account of the 
characteristic habits of each species; a large portion of the 
particulars of which is derived from attentive observation 
under favourable circumstances through a considerable extent 
of time; coupled also with frequent communications from 
practical fishermen of great intelligence; who have always 
been ready to acknowledge small obligations by a free com- 
munication of facts in tlieir cxpcricnco. 

And in addition to these matters an object has been kept 
in view, which the Author has deemed of high importance, 
although it has not usually found a place in works on Natural 
History; and it is to him a matter of regret that it has not 
been worked out to such extent as the subject demands. He 
has laboured, however, by repeated examination of the organs 
and internal structure of the several species and orders or 
classes of fishes to trace the connection of their several parts 
with their instincts and modes of life; and in all these 
researches, of which particulars are scattered through the 
work, he has been able to discern such a connection and 
reciprocal dependance as to establish the conviction of a 
presiding mind that has formed and set in action the whole; 
so that the inhabitants of the water are not less furnished 
than those of the land with the means of existence, and with 
faculties which enable them to turn what may appear to be 
unfavourable circumstances to good account. Linn£eus inquires 

Quis, nisi vidissit, pisces habitare sub undascredo-ret P 
And his proper answer is — 


Quam sapienter ea fecisti! O, Jehovah! 


PREFACE. 


It is with much pleasure the Author acknowledges his 
obligations to gentlemen in difiFerent and remote parts of the 
lited Kingdom, and even beyond them, for the assistance 
they have rendered him in the course of the work now 
introduced to the British public j and to several of these his 
ks are the more especially due as their communications, 
whether of examples or information, have been altogether 
unsolicited. From the remotest parts of the Shetland Islands, 
and from Scilly, with the north and middle portions of 
Ireland, Scotland, and Wales, contributions have been received; 
a large proportion of which at least can only be ascribed to a 
love of science, but of which the particulars are not now 
given, as it was thought more satisfactory to refer to each in 

those parts of our work where the particular subject has been 
under consideration. 

Of his readers then, for the present, the Author takes his 
eave in the words of the ancient Eomau dramatists — “Vos 

valete;” and if their approbation has been obtained— “et 
plauditeO^ 




FISHES OF THE BRITISH ISLANDS. 


Our ancestors were accustomed to call by the name of fi.sb 
all the creatures which inhabit the waters ; and in so doing they 
comprised under this term all the races of crabs and lobsters, 
and also many species of shell-fish, as oysters and cockles. It 
was even a disputed point among them whether the otter should 
not come under this denomination; to which this animal must 
he admitted to have as good a right as the bat to he classed 
among birds; among which, simply on account of its powers 
of flying, it continued to hold a place to even a modern date. 
But a better knowledge of nature has corrected these mistakes, 
and we limit our subject to creatures pointed out by the following 
characters. Not only, therefore, do we say with Dr.' Monro, 
in his work on the structure and physiology of fishes, that by 
t lis name we understand that class of animals which lives in 
water, swims by the assistance of fins, and has the water directly 
applied^ to the gills, through which organ the whole mass of 
blood in the body passes in the course of circulation; which 
definition is so far deficient, that it would not exclude the 
young condition of the several kinds of frogs and newts;— but 
we add also, that they are furnished with nostrils, usually double 
on each side, which do not communicate with the mouth or that 
passage by which they receive the water which passes through 
t ie gills. In a fish also the whole mass of blood passes through 
the gills lor the purpose of receiving the influence of air con- 
tamed in the water, without being again returned to the heart 
until It has been carried to the other parts of the body This 
last observation is probably referred to by Monro, but is not 
fully expressed by him, and in these particulars all fishes agree; 
but there are other characters among them which are sufficiently 
distinct in dltfereiit families as to render it necessary for us to 
divide them into classes; of which, for reasons presently to'be 
assigned, we shall place the Sharks and Bays at the head; in 
doing which we are not singular. The illustrious naturalists, 
Owen and Agassiz, have done the same; and Linn^us, whose 

VOL. I. H 


2 


SHARKS AND EAY-I’ISHES. 


system of nature, although professedly artificial, was intimately 
connected with a profound knowledge of the aflinities of natural 
objects, has even gone so far as to separate them essentially from 
the great family of true fishes, by making them a branch of his 
class of amphibious animals, under the title of swimming amphi- 
bians: the serjrents and other reptiles being formed into another 
class of the same general order. 


CHONDROPTEKTGUOTJS PISHES. 

Hatino a skeleton with few bony particles in its structure, and also 
termed Plagiostomi from the situation of the mouth, and ii, may be 
added, the nostrils, which are beneath a projecting snout. 

SHAEKS AND EAY-FISHES. 

As regards their proper station in the natural classification of 
animals we so far agree with the distinguished Swedish naturalist 
Linneeus, as to place the family which comprises the Sharks and 
Eays in the rank which is next below that of reptiles: to which 
order they are most nearly related in their general structure, 
vital physiology, and mental instincts; and not in the much 
inferior station which includes the Lampreys, as is done in the 
greater part of modern arrangements. 

With the Lamijreys, myxine and lancelet, this class of fishes 
possesses nothing in common, except a soft skeleton that for the 
most part is without bony fibres, and several openings through 
which the water jrasses in the action of breathing; which are 
agreements too slignt and obscure to warrant the conclusion that 
these families possess any near connection of natural affinity, 
whereas the differences in other respects, and even in the par- 
ticulars named, are very wide, a.s we shall presently see. And 
therefore, while wc suffer the last-named family— of Pctromij- 
zonidm, or Lampreys, to remain at the end of our list, as at the 
vanishing point of fishes in their transition towards the class 
of worms, Ave assert for this tribe of choudropterygious fishes 
a prominent station at the head of the whole family of fishes. 

It is because of the softness of the skeleton in the class of 
chondropterygious fishes that the minds of naturalists have been 


SHARKS AND RAY-FISHES. 


3 


impressed with the idea that the structure of the whole of them 
is greatly inferior as compared with the more firm and intricate 
structure of those which are termed bony fishes. We adopt 
the energetic language of Mr. Owen on this subject, and remark; 
“We should lose some most valuable fruits of anatomical study 
were we to limit the application of its facts to the elucidation 
of the unity of the vertebrate t3rpe of organization, or if we were 
to rest satisfied with the detection of the analogies between the 
embryos of higher and the adults of lower species in the scale 
of being. We must go further and in a different direction to 
gain a view of the beautiful physiological principle of the relation 
of each adaptation to its appropriate function, and if we would 
avoid the danger of attributing to inadequate hypothetical secon- 
daiy causes the manifestations of design, of supreme wisdom and 
beneficence, which the various forms of the animal creation 
offer to our contemplation. To revert then to the skeleton of 
fishes with a view to the teleological application of the facts — 
or that which regards them as means directed to an end — 
detei mined by the study of this complex modification of the 
anirnal framework. No doubt there is analogy betvmen the 
cartilaginous state of the endo-skeleton of Cuvier s chondrop- 
teiygiaus, and that of the same part in the embryos of the air- 
breathing vertebrates; but why the gristly skeleton should be, 
as it commonly has been pronounced to be, absolutely inferior 
to t e bony one is not so obvious. I know not why a flexible 
vascular animal substance should be supposed to be raised in 
“gical scale because it has become impregnated by 
the abundant intussusception of earthy salts.” 

active and vigorous of 
shes, like the birds of prey they soar, as it were, in the upper 
regions of their atmosphere, and without any aid from a modified 
respiratory apparatus, devoid of an air-bladder, they habitually 
maintain themselves near the surface of the sea hy the actions 
of their large and muscular fins. The gristly skeleton is in 
prospective harmony with this mode and sphere of life and 
we find well-marked modifications of the digestive and other 
systems of the Shark by which the body is rendered as Hght 
and the space which encroaches on the muscular system as 
small, as might be compatible with those actions. Besides, 
lightness, toughness, and elastieity are the qualities of the 


4 


SHARKS AND RAT-FISHES. 


skeleton most essential to the Shark: to yield to the contraction 
of the lateral inflectors and aid in the recoil are the functions 
■which the spine is mainly required to fulfil in the act of 
locomotion, and to which its alternating elastic balls of fluid, 
and semi-ossified biconcave vertebrse so admirably adapt it. To 
have had their entire skeleton consolidated and loaded with 
earthy matter, would have been an incumbrance altogether at 
variance with the offices which the Sharks are appointed to 
fulfil in the economy of the great deep. 

Yet there are some who would shut out, by easily comprehended 
but quite gratuitous systems of progressive transmutation and 
self-creative forces, the soul-expanding appreciations of the final 
purposes of the fecund varieties of the animal structures by 
which we are drawn nearer to the Great First Cause. They see 
nothing more in this modification of the skeleton, which is so 
beautifully adapted to the exigencies of the highest organized 
of fishes, than a foreshadowing of the cartilaginous condition of 
the reptilian embryo in an enormous tadpole, arrested at an 
incomplete stage of typical development. But they have been 
deceived by the common name given to the plagiostomous fishes: 
the animal basis of the Shark’s skeleton is not cartilage; it is 
not that consolidated jelly which forms the basis of the bones 
of higher vertebrates: it has more resemblance to mucus; it 
requires a thousand times its weight of boiling water for its 
solution, and is neither precipitated by infusion of galls, nor 
yields any gelatine upon evaporation.” (Lecture 6, Hunterian 
Lectures, vol. ii.) The bony frame of the Lampreys, on the 
other hand, is little other than well-coagulated jelly, with no 
more than about one and a half of earthy salts in its composition. 

Nor is it by the general likeness of shape, or internal structure 
and physiology alone, that animals should have their relative 
situation assigned to them in the order of nature. Separately 
from these there are analogies also; and although these analogies 
are chiefly judged of by the living actions of the races or indi- 
vidual species — which actions, in the view of systematic writers, 
whose business is principally with the dead animal, are of all 
foundations of classification tne least definite and trustworthy — 
yet in their general bearing they important purposes in 

one principal aim in the study of nature. In a work intended 
to aid in the instruction of the public mind they should not be 


SHAKKS AND RAY-riSHES. 


5 


lost siglit of; and indeed they ai-e in many respects scarcely 
less insisted on by naturalists of our own day, although un- 
consciously, than they were by writers of an older date; who 
were disposed to make them exclusively the foundation of their 
arrangements. 

There is no reason why the lion should occupy the elevated 
place he does in popular estimation as the king of beasts, except 
with reference to his power over the weaker inhabitants of the 
wilderness. It is his united strength and courage which establish 
his rank in the estimation of writers whose labours have been 
directed to the history of the habits of the animal creation. TVe 
grant indeed, that in the opinion of the moralist and philosopher, 
the possession of mere strength and commanding — perhaps fero- 
cious, powers and dispositions, should not he estimated as the 
sufficient mark to which the supreme rank ought to be assigned. 
But the human mind has shewn a disposition to regard these 
qualities as such a mark; and as a beginning even in this kind 
of superiority must be somewhere, and the consent of ages has 
ascribed it among beasts to the lion, and with the same conviction 
or feeling, among birds to the eagle; we are only proceeding in 
the same direction when we view the Sharks as holding the same 
relative rank among the families of the ocean. They live by the 
exertion of similar powers with those of their analogies of the 
land and air, and even in general with more insatiable appetites 
and energies. 

But there are other circumstances involved in the structure of 
this class of fishes which are worthy of our notice, as tending 
to shew the station they hold among their fellow natives of the 
deep. 

The skin of Sharks bears a nearer resemblance in toughness 
and strength to the covering of the higher order of animals, than 
to the other classes of fishes, and even than does that of their 
kindred chondropterygians or plagiostomes — the Bays; the latter 
of which orders has this covering for the most part soft and 
moist, although in several of the genera it is studded with 
tubercles; but instead of scales the skin is closely covered and 
defended with spines, which in substance bear a not very distant 
likeness to horn, and are even more firm and compact. Beneath 
the skin is a layer of fibres which have the strength and ap- 
pearance of tendons, which cross each other in opposite directions 


6 


SHARKS AND RAY-FTSHES. 


at acute angles. The muscles themselves have a resemblance to 
those of quadrupeds, and the bundles of fibres which constitute 
their substance appear to possess the powers of separate action, 
by which the motions of the fish may be more minutely and 
effectually regulated. Such muscles as lie behind the ventral 
fins are accompanied with what may be denominated tendons, 
which are a portion of animal structure that does not exist in 
the common class of bony fishes; and by the use of these, which 
are longer and stouter the nearer they approach the tail, that 
important organ is enabled to put forth its very powerful action 
without being itself inconveniently stout. Although the lateral 
muscles of a fish’s body may be said to be innumerable, there is 
some propriety in considering those of the body of a Shark as 
forming four of large size, over and above those which are smaller 
and subordinate; for the tendino-cellular membrane interposed 
between the skin and muscle passes between those larger masses 
of muscle, and may be said either to divide or unite them, and 
at the same time serving to give firmness to their action by the 
general support it aflJ'ords them. This description is more es- 
pecially taken from the Eay-mouthed Dogfish and Toper {Mmtelus 
Imis and Galeus vzilgaris;) but with some variation it is, doubtless, 
observable in all Sharks. But it is more distinctly marked in 
the former species than in the latter, thus directing our views 
to Its importance; and accordingly it has been observed by 
fishermen that the former fish, when it has taken the hook, is 
much^ stronger in the water than the latter. 

It IS on account of the particular structure of the muscular 
la5^ers in Sharks that they are able to direct their motions with 
greater precision than the generality of fishes, and also that they 
can continue their efforts without weariness for an almost unlimited 
duration of time; and accordingly sailors inform us of the vast 
extent of ocean along which they have been accompanied by 
some of those fishes, without apparent weariness, when their 
appetites or expectations have been excited after prey. 

We shall defer the description of the eye of the Hays until 
we come to speak particularly of that tribe of fishes; but this 
organ is but little less curious in the Sharks, although its structure 
is founded on very simple principles as compared with that of 
other_ animals. In most kinds of fishes the eyes are round and 
prominent, without the possibility of being closed, even in sleep 


SHARKS AND RAY-FISHES. 


7 


or at the approach of danger; hut in the generality of Sharks, 

1 not in all, the exposed surface becomes oval by means of a 
skin above and below the globe, which, when the 
fash finds itself hooked on the line, or otherwise in danger, is made 
to close over it, somewhat after the manner of the eyelids in 
ir s. lie globe itself is supplied •with muscles to direct its 
actions, and its sphere of motion is still more extended by means 
VD we see a remarkable instance of the 

bv th J ^ ^ produced 

by the ..mple lengthening on, „f « well-known pen into n new 

[n whlel r “ "t 0“ ‘ho '"ity 

whTch M ’■'1 ' "-0 find ,h., the globe, 

Ute bon of Ibe power of ,i,i„„, U lifted from 

the bottom, on which, m other aninml, bceidee those of this great 

ih 7 ’ ’ 1° “7 “ °° “ ’“o" fbat itself forms 

hoL ** of ’'■•‘ol' “ bned on the 

simakirh '"”'0 P'operly 

b™ , 7 ," ‘“7*'^' •'“» “ >i“lo foo'-"! that it may 

If li!: “ " “O'fi'i'otion of the orhitary process 

liar nib T"'r™, l'*' '">0 holt of this 

lenl S ,h V “'‘"““S' of ‘"0"»8 “ fttoater 

ength ,0 the muscles which mo« the eye, and by so doin- of 

It The lifl “ -ore ondden, as well a, a more eMensive action 
01 the eyes in prowling for their prey. 

arrangement of the teeth in Sharks 

gteat^reTeeTL*:STl 'whlcTr 

deserihhig them and the process by whilh Ibey aTTr'oIeei" 
and also the succession of them continued Tn mly ^ 
fiah they take tbeir ri» from a membrane whiel I, o" 
jawsi-for we exclude the consideration of those which are found 
in the g„l let, tongue, and p.I.to-^and they rUe immediately from 
this foundation m an upright direction T-t 
tached tor a time, and then”, hey M awiv m 7 7 f 

to be succeeded by others. Wi i Z Slmrk”“ 
widely different; and the pattieula,, „f the p„„„ by which 
they are produced li„e been firs, and most extensirely described 
by Mr. Owen; but they had to some extent been observed by 
myself before I had obtained an opportunity of learning them 
from that gentleman s more extensive discoveries. 


8 


SHARKS AND BAY-FISHES. 


In all fishes the first step in the formation of teeth is the 
simple production of a soft vascular papilla, or pimple from tne 
free surface of the membrane of. the jaw near the mouth; but 
in the Sharks and Hays these papillte do not proceed to sink 
into the substance of the gum, but become covered by caps 
of an opposite free fold of this membrane. These caps do not 
contract any organic connection with the papilliform matrix (and 
in the torpedo they are very loose), but as this is converted into 
dental tissue the tooth is gradually withdrawn (the points of the 
teeth at first lying flat downward, or in the direction toward 
the mouth,) from the extraneous protecting cap, and as they 
become hard from being clothed with an enamelled surface, 
they assume the upright posture on the border of the jaw. It 
has been assumed that the number of rows of these teeth are 
marks of the age of the Shark, and that an additional row is 
added for each year of its growth. But this is no further correct 
than as the greater breadth of the jaw from the greater size of 
the fish produced by longer life, affords a wider space for the 
teeth to stand upright. A Shark of nearly full growth, if young, 
may have no greater number of rows of teeth standing erect than 
a couple, but there are several others at the same time in the act 
of production; and they are carried forward on the surface by 
an action in the membrane itself on which they rest, until, being 
commonly broken or worn down by the violence to which they 
have been exposed, by the time they have reached the outer 
edge of the jaw, an exfoliation of the membrane itself has taken 
place, and they drop off by a natural process of exfoliation, to 
be succeeded by others, which are in their turn formed at the 
border of the jaw nearest the mouth, and pass upward and 
outward: the whole proceeding bearing no distant likeness to 
that by which the nails are formed in our fingers, or hoofs in 
the feet of beasts, to be passed onward to the part when their 
use is required, and by which they are at last set free from their 
attachment, and lost. The production and protrusion of the teeth 
in the family of Rays is substantially the same as in Sharks; but 
the more slender bony process that in most species projects from 
the base, is sooner broken down by the crushing process of 
feeding on crustaceous or hard food; and the jaw is therefore, 
in most cases, rendered almost smooth before the teeth have 
advanced so far as to be rejected. 

There is only one other subject connected with the general 


SHARKS AMD RAY-FISHES. 


9 


history of this order of fishes, to "which we will address our 
attention, and this is the manner in which they produce 
their young. The males are distinguished from the females in 
a way very unlike any that is seen in other families of fishes, 
and this is by being in possession of jointed organs that are 
attached to the body, close to the ventral fins ; and which are 
usually known by the name of claspers, but of which the precise 
use is little understood, although we may suppose that they have 
some connection with the offices of love. Neither the Sharks 
nor Bays possess what can he termed a milt or roe, as in bony 
. . es, ut they have something equivalent to those organs, which 
IS tound studded with eggs in various stages of growth; and as 
these escape from their primitive station they descend to their 
IH'oper receptacle, which is divided into two chambers, where 
t ey wait for theii final development. The larger number of 

M s are found to hatch their young within themselves, but 
wit out any adhesion to the organ in which they lie; and the 
only exception to^ this internal hatching, at least as it is appli- 
ca e to the British genera, is found in the genus Scyllium, or 
groun haiks, of which we will speak particularly when we 
describe the habits of that race. The Rays, without any ex- 
ception t at is known, resemble the ground Sharks, in excluding 
t ® before the final perfection of their young. 

Of the first named, or viviparous Sharks, the eggs descend 
rom the ovary either at once, as in several species, or in long 
succession, as is the case with the Picked Dogfish; and in the 
double receptacle into which they are now received they obtain 
a lather rapid development, in the progress of which they 
offer an interesting spectacle to a close observer, as being even 
more remarkable than that which takes place in the egg of a 

The slight membranous covering which at first enveloped in 
one mass the embryo fish, and the proper egg which is to supply 
It with sustenance during the period of its interuterine growth, 
has been burst asunder by extension, and the young fish lies 
in Its receptacle awaiting the changes that shall prepare it for 
being launched into the waters of the ocean. But during this 
stage of inaction a temporary substitute is required for the 
purification of the blood, in place of the more perfect gills 
which will have to perform this function in their future con- 

VOL. I. 


10 


SHARKS. 


dition. A number of vascular fibres are provided, which hang 
from the orifices of the breathing holes, and even from the 
temporal orifices where these are provided; and they do not 
disappear until the creature is prepared for its permanent state 
of existence. It is a remarkable instance of the accuracy with 
which the transitory condition of interuterine existence is pro- 
vided for, that the whole of the contents of the nittrient bag 
forming the egg has become absorbed into the body at the very 
instant when its presence is no longer required, and the fish 
has become capable of seeking its own support. 

It may be mentioned as a piece of superstition, that in no 
very distant times the teeth of Sharks, under the name of ser- 
pent’s teeth, were set in silver, and used to render more easy 
the cutting of the teeth in children. It was more in reference 
to their supposed occult virtue, than to their mechanic effect, 
that even so wise a man as the physician and naturalist Kondele- 
tius believed that when reduced to powder they formed also 
an excellent tooth powder. 

SHARKS, 

These are fishes of a lengthened form, having the mouth 
and nostrils placed under a projecting snout, the jaws furnished 
with several rows of teeth, the gill-covers bound down to the 
side, and the openings like separate slits in the skin, not less 
than five in number. The fins covered with the common skin, 
the tail irregularly lobed, the upper portion being of greater 
length than the lower, and having the vertebras, or joints of 
the back, carried onward close to the border of the caudal fin. 

There are some kindred species, which vary in some degree 
from the shape most common in this family, by approaching 
more nearly to that of the Rays; on which account they are 
said to be aberrant. Of these we shall take notice when 
describing such of them as have been taken on the British 
coasts. 

The following arrangement of such of the genera of this family 
as belong to the catalogue of British fishes, is derived from the 
“Animal Kingdom” of lihe Baron Cuvier, but modified in a 
few particulars, by the observations of the German naturalists 
Midler and Henle, and by Dr. Gray. 


11 


SCYLLIUM. 


depressed, short, and blunt; nostrils 
behind the eye- an anaf fin ^ temporal orifice 

fins. The gcL’rie name is iro^rT^ y 

ployed by Aristotle for those fi.fil > the common name em- 

covering of their shin rendered them^aSe foTandle."' 


nurse hound. 

BOUNCE AND CATFISH, 


Squalus eanicula, 
Catidiis major, 

ScylUum catulus, 
” siellaris, 


Le Sqiiale Boussefte, 


iJlSN.»ITg_ 

WiLtoucnBY AND Eat; p. 62. but the figure. 

B 4, does not convey a proper idea of the fish, 
Blemino; British Animals, p. 165. 

o/Eisso, Icth.. 

YAimELC; British Fishes, 2nd. ed., vol ii.. p 
493, but the figure is very imperfect as 8 
representation. 

'“v J a'; f *“ 12 ™. 

ri rv,’’ n confounds together this 

andtheOommonEoughHound. TheSaualm 

camcula. No. 112, La Boussette Unrle Z 
Bounce of Bloch, has ocellated spots’ am 
ertainly is not the Nurse Hound, probabh 
the Squalus stellaris of Authors. ^ ^ 

This species and the Rough Hound * n 
are classed as ground Sharks, because th mentioned 

near the bottom, where they seek their 
and rocky ground. Such of them as S 
ground are of a lighter colour in c f 
mature in fishes, by which ° 

corresponding with the ground which the'y 
food for ,hc orost port coosi.,, „( „ J„ J, 


12 


NURSE HOUND 


crabs and lobsters; but, like most others of tbis tribe, they 
are ready to seize any tempting prey that comes near them. 
They are therefore often taken with a line; but the capture 
is of little value to the fisherman, as their flesh is too rank 
for even the coarsest stomachs. The liver affords some oil; 
and the skin might be used for polishing wood, but that it is 
too rough to be employed on the finer sorts : I believe a 
species of this family from the Mediterranean is preferred for 
this purpose. 

This fish is not commonly found near the shore; and for 
this cause chiefly it is most frequently met with through the 
summer and autumn, when fishing boats are able to venture 
into the deeper water of the channel, where they are to be 
met with. But there is reason to believe also, that at this season 
they change their ground ; for even when the weather has 
permitted fishing in their summer haunts, and that too with 
what is known to be a favourite bait, they have not been 
caught until the spring is advanced. 

The young are not hatched within the body as is the case 
with the generality of Sharks ; but they are separately enclosed 
in purses, which are of a firm texture like leather, of an oblong 
form, about three inches long, with a raised border, and having 
extended tendrils at the four corners; which become curled up 
when in contact with the water, and so fasten the case to some 
fixed substance, which preserves it from being tossed about by 
the violence of storms, and in some degree serves it in place 
of a nest. They are deposited singly, or no more than two 
or three together, late in the year. But although I have some- 
times found these purses attached to some stalk of flexible coral, 
I have scarcely known an instance where the purse has been 
obtained from the body of the fish; from Avhich the conclusion 
seems to arise, that at that time it does not take a bait. I have 
met with a young one, taken in a net, of less than four inches 
in length, but bearing all the marks of its full-grown parent. 

Although not so formidable with its teeth, as many other 
Sharks, this fish is well able to defend itself from an enemy. 
When seized it throws its body round the arm that holds it, 
and by a contractile and reversed action of its body grates 
over the surface of its enemy with the rugged spines of its skin, 
like a rasp. There are few animals that can bear so severe 


NURSE HOUND. 


13 


an infliction, by ■which their surface is torn with lacerated 
wounds. 

This species becomes more scarce as we proceed northward 
in the British Islands. 

This fish grows to the length of four or five feet. An ex- 
ample, three feet nine inches long, measured thirteen inches 
in girth behind the pectoral fins. The head depressed, blunt, 
rounded in front; eyes two inches from the front, three 
inches asunder, their figure a narrow oval, with a longi- 
^dinal fold below each of them; temporal orifice round, 
below the line of the posterior angle of the eye. The body 
engthened posteriorly, with the tail extended in a direct line 
wit its length. Pectoral fins low on the body, and wide. 

rom the snout to the anterior dorsal fin twenty-two inches, 
to the second dorsal two feet five inches and a half; neither 
0 them large. Anal fin opposite to the space between the 
dorsals; the abdominal fins anterior to the first dorsal. Caudal 
n en(hng square. Nostrils an inch and a half from the snout, 
near t e margin, the lobe irregularly folded; the mouth cir- 
cular, an inch and a half from the snout; teeth sharp, and 
in severa rows. Colour dusty red, with numerous large dark 
spots; below white. The skin very rough from spicul®, the 
points of which are directed backward. 



OVUM OF NURSE HOUSE. 


14 


ROUGH HOUND. 


LESSER SPOTTED DOGFISH. ROWHOTJND, tllC aiicieilt 
pronunciation of Eougli. morghx. 


Sqiialiis catulus, 
Gatulus minor, 

“ aristoielis, 

« « 

Scyllmm eatulus, 
Bquale roussctte, 

it it 

t( H 


LlNNiETIS. 

■Willoughby Eay; Tab. B. 4 

JoNSTON, Article 2, Pniictmn 2. 

Donovan’s Figures of British Fishes, FTo. 65. 

Fleming’s Br. Animals, p. 165, but this author 
is confused in his account of these fishes. 

Lacepede; Poissons, vol. ii. 

Jenyns’ Manual, p. 495. 

Taeeeii,’s British Fishes, 2ud. ed., vol. ii., 
p. 487. 

Bloch’s Figures; Squahis eatulus, Lesser 
Kough Hound, Ho. 1 14, a bad figure, probably 
taken, as also that of the Nurse Hound, 
from a badly-dried skin. 


This species has much the same habits as the Nurse Hound, 
in keeping near the bottom, and prowling about in search of 
crustaceous animals and small fishes j but it is more freq^uently 
caught with the line, and that too at all seasons, as well as 
at a less depth of water. I have found it ready to shed its 
purses in April, hut the more usual time is in summer and 
autumn, when it is common to find them in pairs in the body 
of the fish; and also eggs before their full development in 
considerable numbers. These purses are much smaller than 
those of the Nurse Hound, less firm in texture, of a different 
shape and a pale yellow colour; with slender tendrils at the 
corners, that at first may be stretched out to the length of a 
couple of feet. These, as in the case of the Nurse Hound, 
serve the purpose of mooring the egg-case to some fixed ob- 
ject; and to ensure its safety the fish at first passes with it 



ROUGH HOUND.' 



ROUGH HOUJS’D. 


15 


round some tuft of flexible coral or sea-weed. The case thus 
becomes drawn from the body, and the remaining tendrils serve 
o nnA it to the substance to which it is attached; to which, 
^it a culling and contracting motion it becomes bound very 
iRi y. I have seen where this action has caused the whole to 

^ nest, with the treasure well con- 
floKP • rpi’ ^ following is a particular 

coral’^ Ae whole mas; was the flexible 

the tendr'T verrucosa, about the branches of which 

■ »»Lw'd J,T- '"‘""f ■ ‘■'Id 

niattcd with tb '”b'^’ tendrils were so embedded and 

SeHuXaria: <,r ' Ike twisted threads of 

cSflrTif TT “ “ *how that the pria- 

been dem 't*? '’J,'*'"®'' their growth since the egg-case had 
P “en “““ “ thi.%g-case a 

(t't»e/rS !'d * “ '“S'h. tome serpulw 

CM side of Th • '“"titletahle portion of 

“1 w '“a'” 'r'""'* “ ‘I*™ “e'tas ef «ley»- 

iZes. rf sS «f December' and Ihe 

appears to harp 1 reason may explain the long delay which 

embryo. But that iths” *1*^ ^ipement and escape of the 
lime appears from the fact thii '““"’■’'“‘‘e'l “ > "hort 
of the rock, exposed to th’o L 

developed in several wooU in ^°t 

advancement to shew th t *■' they had made sufficient 

season. be accomplished in due 

There are four slits at tl,.a ~ , 

attracted the notice of naturalfttr h t "^bich have 

not yet received a satisCo^tx^h; Lffin Z 
IS, that they serve to admit Jater^to th supposition 

case; but on trial I have found that t 
small quantity of sea-water at an earlv st ^ 

is fatal to life. Another supp^sWon ; i 
allow for the growth of the embryo bv i^^o d ^ 
of escape for any fluid that niicrh/,p ^ piovidmg a means 

space, and interfere with the growth Tth 

Their use is at least obscure as I b be enclosed young. 

cover any corresponding s ft S th^"' "" r 

S silt in the egg-case of its kindred 


16 


ROUGH HOUND. 


species, the Nurse Hound, nor in those of any of the Ray 
tribe. 

The motion of this species in the water appears to he slow 
and irregular, and little under the direction of intelligence; so 
that the prey might seem to be sought for at random rather 
than in pursuit. When high in the water, whither it some- 
times ascends, its progress is serpentine, with a motion of the 
head corresponding with that of the hinder part of the body. 

Fishermen remark that when in danger, both this species 
and the Nurse Hound shut their eyes; which is done by 
lifting the lower eyelid, as is the case with birds. 

The Rough Hiuid is in but little esteem with us as food; 
but it is not altogether rejected, for in the West of Cornwall 
it is used to make what is there valued as moi-ghi soup: the 
name of morghi being an Ancient British word that signifies a 
sea-dog. 

But in some foreign countries it is greatly valued. Wil- 
loughby found it for sale in the market at Rome; and Risso, 
who confounds the species, and supposes the Scyllium stellaris 
to be the same with the Catulus maximus of Willoughby and 
Ray, speaks favourably of it, and pronounces the liver especially 
to be delicious. It appears, however, that as food it is not 
always without danger; and Lacepede mentions an instance 
where a family after eating it had a narrow escape of their 
lives. It is scarcely necessary to caution English people against 
exposing themselves to the same danger. 

It is a general remark, applicable indeed to the whole family 
of Sharks, that the female exceeds the male in size ; but whether, 
as in their analogical races, the lion and eagle, they exceed 
also in ferocity, we have no opportunity of knowing. But the 
opinion of some naturalists — that some of the species continue 
to increase in bulk as long as they live, is certainly erroneous. 
Sharks generally are of quick growth; but they reach a de- 
finite magnitude in a very few years, and beyond this are 
not found to advance. 

In form it is more slender than the last species; it rarely 
reaches a yard in length: the specimen described measured two 
feet six inches. Head depressed, snout short and blunt, an inch 
and a quarter before the eye, which latter organ is of a slender 
oval shape; temporal orifice near its posterior angle; nostrils 


HOUGH HOUND. 


17 


large and lobed; moutb nine tenths of an inch from the snout. 
Pectoral fins low and wide; teeth numerous, sharp; skin rough, 
with short hut sharp points; colour reddish brown, lighter on 
the belly; covered with numerous small dark brown spots, the 
smallest on the back, larger on the sides and fins. 

I have seen an example that was paler than usual, with faint 
spots, but over the whole surface were scattered irregular very 
ac patches, as if mottled with pitch; and each patch having 
a border roMd it of a lighter colour than the ground. But I 
not iscover any other distinction beyond this of colour, 
trom the common examples of the Bough Hound. 



OVUM OP ROUGH HOUND, (WITH CASE.) 


VOL. I. 


D 


PRISTITJEUS. 

This genns differs from Seyllimn in having a more lengthened snout, 
nostrils unconnected with the mouth, and by a row of larger reclin- 
ing spines or scales arranged like a saw along the upper edge of the 
taiJ_; which latter organ proceeds in a right line with the body, 
as m bcylhum. The generic name refers to the saw-like structure of 
the ridge of the tail. 


BLACK-MOUTHED DOGFISH. 


EYED DOGFISfi. 


ScyJlmm melanostomum, Taeeeli.’s Br. Pishes, yol. ii., p. 495. 

Fnstmrus mela7iosiomus, Lowe’s Pishes of Madeira, T. 14. 

PruUdams melanostomus, Gbay; Catalogue Br. Mus’, p. 124. 

Ihis fish is widely spread, although it was not recognised 
as a species— at least in Britain— before the publication of Mr. 
Itarrells History of British Fishes; which contained the figure 
and description, a specimen of which, a larger likeness, is given 
in this volume. It has since been found by Mr. Lowe, in 
the Island of Madeira; and it now appears that it is scarcely 
rare in some parts of the north of our island; where, how- 
ever, before the publication of an authentic likeness, it had 
been supposed the same with our Nurse Hound: the last- 
named species being therefore unknown on that coast. 

Ihe Black-mouthcd or Eyed Dogfish is better known in the 
Mediterranean than with us. It is mentioned by Risso and 
Rafinesque, but without adding much to our knowledge of its 
habits. Ihe latter says that the blackness of the inside of its 
mouth had caused it to have the name — in Italian, of Bocca 
d Inferno, or hell’s mouth. Its haunts appear to he near the 
ground, and both the examples I have met with were caught 
with the line. It also resembles its nearest affinities the Snjllia, 
in depositing egg-cases in which the young are hatched; but 



BLAUK - MOUTH ED DOGFISH. 


black-mouthed dogfish. 


19 


file form of these cases differs considerably-as well from those 
ground Sharks, as from the purses of the Kay 

a figure of one, in which 
he tendrils are at one of the ends only, and so short as to 
e incapa le of that entwining action which is the principal 
haracter of the egg-case of the Nurse and Kough Hounds. 

what furr^’ it to any fixed substance, and 

?ves I fZ"" - -certain. Mr. Lowe also 

is at variance Cith MsTJ’ '^^i'°^'t^"'‘ately his description 
the natural size, when it° fill’s ^f‘“/cing marked as of 
dimen. io.s-an inch a^a b IF 

■"'ith a smoofTi cT^' * r ^ half an inch broad; 

1 a smooth shining surface a-n^ ^ ^ 

or horn colour. It is of v»l, n ^ 

there is in it a v' 'ni v on one account; for 

s I L m f ' - tendril is placed, 

as m the purse of the Kough Hound. 

was in my original description was taken, 

“it poTlriv!" »■“ »” rather 

quarter, frnm if’ ™°“' Protriiiled one inch and three 

n a «nl t ‘T°' =)"t "“‘til* »»• inrlt 

other on the n t e snout, double one bencatli linear, the 
in the Lid iZh'"’, 1 "“S' Pra-i-aqt, a depression 

beta '.LTotZ l 1 -“'.ci-e 

inch and three quarters I'idt ST’ 

at each side of the base of pJ b t numerous, small, sharp, 

spiracles five, open The b V * 1 °^^ ^ small sharp process; 

t head, .h.rn rout thenht hat- “ 
forward. Pectoral fins wide much I't .1 “ 

Dog. The first dorsal begin, ’bXod ,1 

inches from the snoutt the second at' 'T'™’ 

half— both rather small; Tentrals ten ' Z Z larhes and a 

anal fin four inches loL rtherL" " 

opposite the end of the sel.Z L C 

Ltd™ tt:;;'';LTei:tt,t:rL"'5 ‘“t' 

under lobe rather narrow its course, expanded beneath® thi 
upper rtdge of the snpenor lobe has a double row of prickles 
nointmg outward and downward on each side; lateral line 


go 


BLACK-MOUTHED DOGFISH. 


suddenly bent opposite the origin of the caudal fin. Colour 
light brown on the head and along the back; on each side 
two rows of ocellated spots — one row beginning at the side 
of the neck and continued along the side of the back ; the second 
row commencing behind the eye and passing along the upper 
side of the belly, becoming obsolete near the ventral fins. 
These rows are separated by numerous irregular spots, which 
however, assume somewhat of a straight direction; the fins 
and hinder part of the back are finely barred and clouded 
with various tints of brown and yellow; the mouth dark- 
coloured within. 

This example was a male, and was ornamented with livelv 
colours; but since then I have obtained one in which the 
colour was so diluted as to appear almost of a uniform grey; 
although on close inspection the usual markings could be dis- 
cerned. It was also a male, and its pale colour may be explained 
by its emaciated condition, for it appeared as if in a state of 
starvation. The length was a little beyond two feet, which 
therefore I suppose to be the ordinary size, but the caudal 
portion of the body behind the second dorsal fin appeared 
longer than in the former example. 




t 


« 


I 

f 



21 


NOTIDANUS. 

Cuvier remarks that this genus only differs from the genus Gahus, 
presently to bo described, in not having a first dorsal fin; but even 
a slight inspection will shew that the distinction between them is very 
great; and that Notidanus bears a closer resemblance to Bcylliwm and 
Prutmrus, as well in shape as habits, so far as the latter are known. 
It even appears that the resemblance is carried so far in a species 
found in the East Indies, that it is covered with spots, which are 
black. We place it therefore the next in succession to those its kin- 
dred genera; and propose to limit it moro cIo.sely than Baron Cuvier 
has done, by excluding from it the Mediterranean species with seven 
gill openings. The shape and general form of the latter will warrant 
tills; but not being an inhabitant of our seas it will not find a place 
in our History. 

The genus Notidanus therefore, is distinguished by a rounded snout, 
the want of a first dorsal fin, a lengthened tail, which is stretched 
out as in the genus Sci/llium, an anal fin, and remarkably by the 
presence of six gill openings. It is the genus HexancMs of llafinesque. 

The name Notidanus appears to have been a local one among the 
Greeks, and may have been applied to the fish we are about to de- 
scribe. It signifies “dry back,” perhaps as being, metaphorically, void 
of a fin in the usual place. 

Jonston supposes that the term Notidanus may have been applied to 
quite another species — the Centring, a native of the Mediterranean, 
but not found with us. 


SIX-GILLED SHARK. 


SIX-BRANCHIAL SHARK. GREY SHARK. 


Squalus griseus, 

Le Squale Oriset, 
Grey Sharlc, 
Hexanchus griseus, 

it fi 

Notidanus griseus, 


Turton’s Linnaius. 

Lacepede. Risso; lohthyologie, p. 37 
Zoologist, 1816, p. 1337. 

Dr. Ga.AY; Catalogue Br. Mus., p. 67. 
Tarbell’s Br P., 2nd. Suppl., p. 25. 
Cuvier. 


The example from which, the description is taken, measured 
in length no more than two feet two inches and half; but it 
has been caught of the length of eleven or twelve feet. The 


SIX-GILLED SHARK. 


22 

head wide and level over the summit, the breadth from eye 
to eye two inches and three quarters; the snout rounded in 
front and somewhat thick; eye large, staring, and slightly 
oval, without an angle on the anterior portion or inner canthus, 
and destitute of a nictitant membrane (a loose membrane, separate 
from the eyelids, and which covers a portion of the globe in 
some Sharks. It is a conspicuous organ in birds.) This portion 
of the eye is immediately over the symphysis of the lower jaw. 
The larger nostril is half way between the eye and snout, 
enclosed by a prominent margin, the orifice directed forward. 
Temporal orifice small, an inch and half from the posterior angle 
of the eye. The gape large, tongue bound down and not ap- 
parent; teeth in the upper jaw eight on each side, thin at 
the base, the points slender and sharp, not serrated, their 
direction towards the angle of the mouth. A small vacancy 
at the symphysis of this jaw, and a little in advance of this 
are four teeth, the two middle ones being parallel and very 
slender, the points directed towards the mouth; the other two 
more remote, and their points diverging. A little in advance 
of these are other two, which might easily escape observation, 
being slender, smaller, and more loosely attached. As in 
the upper jaw so in the lower there is a single row of teeth, 
but they differ greatly in form, being thin and broad, their 
anterior margin higher, the sloping edge finely serrated; they 
are six in number on each side of the symphysis, with what 
appears like a small bifid intermediate one. Orifices of the gills 
six, closely approaching each other; the openings long and 
encircling the throat. Pectoral fins wide, triangular. Body 
with the general proportions of the Picked Dogfish, but the 
head wider and larger. Dorsal fin single, its anterior edge 
fourteen inches from the snout, and opposite the space between 
the ventrals and anal— larger than the latter. Caudal fin six 
inches and a half long, and consequently more than one fourth 
of the length of the fish; and longer as well as more slender 
than that of any other British Shark except the Thrasher, — 

( Alopias mdp>es.) The lower lobe of this fin is falcate, and 
grows more slender as it proceeds, being narrowest opposite 
the notch. Along the posterior tw’o thirds of the upper margin 
of the tail is a row of spines, of three series, closely pressed 
together at the roots, and the two outmost regularly diverging. 


SIX-GILLED SHARK. 


rs 

thus shewing a near correspondence with a like structure in 
the genus Pristiurus. The texture of the skin is rough when 
felt against the grain. Colour blackish brown on the back, and 
pectoral, dorsal, and caudal fins; reddish grey on the sides, 
white beneath. Lateral line pale, bent suddenly down at the 
falcate portion of the tail. Conjunctiva of the eye bluish white, 
the pupil large and black. It was a male — the claspers small. 

I he example here described was taken with a line, at the 
distance of about three miles from the land on the south coast 
of Cornwall, and at the time when it was caught appeared to 
be feeding on pilchards. In its habits it is undoubtedly a ground 
Shark, and like the others of that class— the Nurse and Rough 
Hounds— appears to want activity. The fisherman who caught 
this fish informed me that it scarcely moved after it was taken 
into the boat. Eisso says that in the Mediterranean it keeps 
in very deep water, but in some parts is not uncommon; but 
Sw'ainson never met with it during six years in which he 
resided in Sicily. It also appears to have been unknown to 
the older naturalists, and I have sought for it in vain in the 
works of Rondeletius, Gesner, Willoughby and Ray, Jonston 
and Euysch, who may be judged to represent the ichthyo- 
logical knowledge of their day. It was not known to Artedi, 
nor to LinnsBus so lately as at the publication of the tenth 
edition of his system; but is recognised in Turton’s translation 
of Gmelin’s edition of that work, under the scarcely appropriate 
name of Squalus grtseiis. It is there represented as growing 
to the length of two feet and a half; but although this diflhrs 
so little from the size of the Cornish specimen, it is clear, 
from the additional teeth specified by Turton, that the latter 
must have been a younger individual. An example, the first 
and only other that has been taken in Britain, was caught 
with a line off Ventnor, in the Isle of Wight, and measured 
little less than eleven feet in length; and Risso describes the 
fish in terms which can signify nothing less than these full 
proportions. In the specimen referred to by Turton there was 
only one row of teeth in the upper jaw, but there were many 
rows in the lower ; from which we may judge that it is about 
this period of its growth that the evolution of dentition 
begins to shew itself, and first in the lower jaw, Eisso 
assigns three rows of triangular sharp-pointed teeth to the 


^4 


51X-OILLED SHARK. 


upper jaw, and to tlie lower five; and lie adds that the 
central inferior teeth are sharp and conical; by which I under- 
stand him to say, that at the symphysis, between the lateral 
arrangements of flat serrated teeth he made out two or more 
of what I had supposed to be a single bifid tooth. It is probable 
he is correct; but they are pressed closely together, and 
erect, so that their exact structure cannot be ascertained with- 
out some degree of mutilation. 

Both the British specimens here referred to are now added 
to the stores of the British Museum. 



HEAD OF SIX-OILLED SHARK, 


4 


1 



WHITE SHARK. 


25 


CAECHAETAS. 

The species have no Kpiracles or hreathing orifices behind the eyes, 
and have an anal fiin. The first dorsal fin much before the ventrals, 
and the second about opposite to the anal. A depression at the origin 
of the upper lobe of the tail. The teeth are generally cornpressed and 
cutting; usually serrated on the edge; but this can scarcely be taken 
into the definition of the genua, since one or two species are without 
it, that in all other respects agree with the others. 

Carcharias is the Greek name of some kind of the larger Sharks. 


WHITE SHARK. 


Sipialus carcharias. Linn^us and Cuviee. 

Canis carcharias. Lamia and Tiburo of Authors ; Artedi. 

“ “ JoNSTON; Artioulus 2, Punctum 1. 

“ ** Willoughby; p. 47. Cuvier rightly observes that 

Willoughby’s figure, B 7, is not worthy of being 
referi’ed to. This was copied among other “ill- 
shaped fishes,” from Gesner, who probably had 
possessed a dried skin of the fish; and from 
him again it was copied by Jonston. But 
Cuvier has overlooked a figure in the appendix, 
tab. 5, f. 1, which Willoughby had copied from 
that accurate Dutch traveller, John Nieuhofs; 
and which, except at the end of the tail, affords 
a very tolerable figure of the species we have 
to describe. — Risso; Icthyologie, p. 25. 


That more than one, or even two species, have been 
confounded together under the name of the White Shark, is 
almost certain. It seems remarkable also that no trustworthy 
figure and description are to be found, of a species which is 
seen in abundance in the West Indies; where it is the dread 
of sailors, who are in constant fear of becoming its prey when 
they bathe or fall into the sea. That it sometimes wanders 
into the British Channel there is much evidence to shew. In 
VOL. I. E 


26 


WHITE SHARK. 


the ‘'AnTiual Ergister,” for 1785, quoted in “Loudon’s Mag- 
azine of Natural History,” vol. vii, it is said that in September 
of that year, vast numbers of the West India Shark appeared 
in the Channel, and many of them were taken by fishermen 
of Brighton. The example presently to be described, and of 
which we give a figure, was of small size, and measured no 
more than fifty-four inches in length; but several others have 
been seen in Mount’s Bay in Cornwall, of much larger size; 
and one, which was seen by a gentleman who had often ob- 
served the White Shark in the West Indies, and was pronounced 
by him to be of the same species, measured about twenty feet 
in length. 

It appears necessary to make those remarks on the identity 
oi the species, since the Great Wliite Shark of the West 
Indies is said not to be furnished with a spiracle behind the 
eye; whereas in the description of our example it will be per- 
ceived that this organ existed, although it was of such small size 
as to be easily overlooked. This circumstance would transfer 
the species to the next following genus Galeus; of which no 
other British species is known beside the common Toper. But 
I prefer to let if remain in this place, at least until it is 
ascertained whether or not there is another species without a 
minute spiracle; and consequently whether or not naturalists 
are in error in that respect. 

Laid by the side of a Toper of the same length the difference 
was conspicuous, even at first sight, although the likeness was 
sufficiently near to bear a comparison. A well-marked distinction 
is in the eye, which stands out prominently, exceeding that of 
the Blue Shark in this respect, while in the Toper it is slightly 
below nhe level. The spiracle is very small, and barely 
on a level with the surface, where in the Toper there is a 
depression. The snout of the latter fish has the appearance of 
being longer, through the great thickness of the head, and 
prominency of the eye of our White Shark ; the snout of which 
is also substantially thicker, and consequently less flat. It is 
especially sunk in at the nostrils, where the Toper is much 
less so, and its nostrils are less open. Teeth notched on both 
edges; pectoral fins longer; the body thicker throughout, 
esjiecially from the abdominal fins to the tail. From the second 
dorsal to the tail, where the Toper is round, there is a cavity 


WHITE SHARK, 


27 


or depression j anal fin a little less than the second dorsal. 
Colour brown, darker on the hack, lighter on the belly. 

It should be observed that the tail of the White Shark, as 
represented in Mr. Yarrell’s figure, 2nd. Ed., vol. ii, p. 502, 
does not agree with a specimen of that part in my possession 
from the West Indies, nor indeed with the other figure at page 
503, nor with Lacepede’s plate 8, fig. 1 of vol. i. 

The White Shark is to sailors the most formidable of all the 
inhabitants of the ocean; for in none besides are the powers 
of inflicting injury so equally combined with eagerness to ac- 
complish it. They usually cut asunder any object of considerable 
size, and thus swallow it; but if they find a diflRcuIty in doing 
this, there is no hesitation in passing into the stomach even 
what is of enormous bulk; and the formation of the jaws and 
throat render this a matter of but little difficulty. Ruysch says 
that the whole body of a man, and even a man in armour, 
(loricatus,) has been found in the stomach of a White Shark; 
and Captain King, in his survey of Australia, says he had caught 
one which could have swallowed a man with the greatest ease. 
Elumenbach says a whole horse has been found in it; and 
Captain Basil Hall reports the taking of one in which, besides 
other things, he found the whole skin of a buffalo, which a 
short time before had been thrown overboard from his ship. 
Happily the visits of this fish to our coasts are too rare to 
expose our sailors to its depredations. 



Upper and under tooth of White Shark, 
from the West Indies. 


28 


BLUE SHARK. 


Linn^us. 

Gray; Catalogue of British Museum, p. 125. 
Cuvier. 

Fleming; British Animals, p. 167. 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 499. 

Yarrell; British Pishes, 2nd. Ed., vol. ii, 
p. 498. 

The Blue Shark is a restless and wandering fishj which mi- 
grates to our coasts in summer, and is even found at that time 
to stray so far north as the Orkney Islands j but it leaves us 
again on the approach of winter ; and if, with the commentators 
on the Halieuticon of the poet Oppian, we are to believe that the 
fish Glaucus of that writer is the same with the Glaucus of 
jElian, the season when it abounds with us is the time when 
it has disappeared from the seas of Italy. I have known it 
thrown on shore in Cornwall so early as the first week in 
March, but it is rarely seen before the month of June; when 
its arrival is made known by the injuries it inflicts on the nets 
and lines of fishermen. This is done in hunting after the fish 
that have become entangled, and so are more easily seized; and 
as the drift-nets are stretched out for pilchards or herrings, it 
will pass along their course from one end to the other, and 
cut out every separate fish with the portion of net that held 
it; all of which it swallows together. If it is entangled for a 
moment, its keen and serrated teeth soon effect an escape, whether 
from the net or hook; but the latter case is sometimes attended 
with difficulty, and then it is that its instinctive efforts often 
lead to a curious complication of circumstances. 

It is the habit of such of the family of Sharks as swim high 
in the water, when they seize their prey to do it with the action 
of turning the head and fore parts of the body; which method 


Squalus glaucust 

t( if 

Carckarias glaucus, 

** a 

tl 

if if 


1 

I 


I 

i 


! 


;■» 



U' 



BLUS SHARK. 


3 




r 



151, UE SHARK. 


of proceeding has been supposed to arise from a difficulty 

that is felt in seizing an object with the mouth in a prone 

position; but which appears to be adopted only that they may 
obtain a greater advantage in a rolling motion, to cut the 
object in two parts, or more effectually with a vibrating action 
of the head, to separate such a portion as they are prepared 
to swallow. On a large substance, with their formidable array 
of teeth the grasp cannot fail to be successful ; but with so 
slender a bulk as a fisherman’s line, it is sometimes otherwise; 
and when this has escaped the grinding action of the bite, the 

turning of the body is continued until the whole of the line 

is twisted round itself, and the fish is thus brought to the 
surface, even from a depth of forty fathoms. 

The Toper has been known to do the same thing under the 
like circumstances. 

It appears that this fish pursues its prey by sight rather than 
by scent, although its nerve of smelling is of large size; but 
it is known to be sensible to a nauseous smell or taste, for 
fishermen assert that it may be driven away by pouring bilge- 
water into the sea where it is: a jhece of information that may 
be of use in reference to the still more destructive White 
Shark. 

The Blue Shark seems to have a generally rapacious appetite, 
and has been known to leap out of the water to seize a piece 
of beef hanging on the quarter of a ship. It is only owing, 
therefore, to the circumstance that usually it does not come 
very close to the land, or enter harbours, that man himself does 
not suffer from its voracity. Jonston is of opinion that it shews 
a preference for human flesh; and he records an instance where 
a soldier was attacked by it, and had a narrow escape from 
being severely bitten. In a fish of such indiscriminate appe- 
tite it might appear superfluous to specify particulars; but 
from the stomach of one of six feet in length 1 have 
taken a large Picked Dogfish and a Conger, each bitten 
across at the middle, and also a Grey Gurnard. In another 
instance there were found four mackerel, half a garfish, and 
as many herrings, wholly uninjured, as the fisherman sold for 
eighteen pence. Yet after such a hearty meal the Sharks 
devoured the bait. 

It is also remarkably retentive of live, as indeed are the whole 


30 


BLUE SHARK. 


of this tribe of fishes. Aa individual was caught with a line, 
its liver was cut out, and the bowels left hanging from the 
body, in which state it was again thrown into the sea. But 
it continued near the boat; and not long afterwards it pursued, 
and attempted to devour, a mackerel that had escaped from 
the net. In another instance the fish was thrown overboard 
after the head had been severed from the body; after which, 
for a couple of hours, the body continued to use the efforts 
of swimming in various directions — to employ the comparison 
of a boy on board the boat — as if it were looking for its head. 
When taken into the boat a large Shark may still prove a 
formidable enemy, by lashing with its tail in all directions; 
but the chopping off of this organ presently removes the danger. 
There is, however, another mode of proceeding, which may be 
more conveniently and effectually practised, even before it is 
lifted into the boat. The olfactory nerve, which is the largest 
in the body, is so stunned by a blow on the snout, that for 
a time the creatui-e is entirely disabled; although indeed con- 
tinued immersion in the sea will again restore the possession 
of its energies. A Shark of very large size, that was making 
great resistance, was speedily disabled by having its tail laid 
hold of, and lifted high out of water, while the head and 
upper parts remained immersed. 

This species does not produce its young during the time it 
is on our coast, and in only one instance have I found eggs 
in its body. We may therefore conclude that its fecundity is 
between the time of its leaving our seas in the autumn, and 
its return in the early part of summer; but the young ones of 
about eighteen inches or two feet in length, frequently come 
to us with their parents. 

In regard to this point in the history of the Blue Shark, as 
also of some others of this family, there are some remarkable 
particuhus, in which the opinions of ancient writers find little 
favour in the judgment of modern naturalists, from the well- 
known credulity of the former, and their proneness to place a 
wrong interpretation on even the commonest occurrences of 
nature; but which arc supported by the observations and con- 
sequent belief of sailors of our own day. Nor are the latter 
disposed to alter their convictions by the doubts or disbelief 
of the scientific naturalists of the land and closet. I refer 


BLUE shark. 


SI 

especially to the credit which this fish has obtained for the 
exercise of intense love for its offspring, which is in remarkable 
contrast to the ferocity it exhibits towards the other inhabitants 
of the deepj and for the manner in which it is supposed to 
have displayed it, as described in the following translation of 
the Greek poem by Oppian, on fish and fishing: — 


“Others, when aught disturbs the ravaged seas, 

And trembling young their conscious fciir.s express, 

Extend their jaws, and shew the saler way: — 

The frighted stragglers soon the call obey. 

Within the concave roof uninjured rest, 

Safe as tlie chirper in his mossy nest. 

Thus the Blue Sharks, secure from chasing foes. 

Within their widen’d mouths their young enclose 
Beneath the circling arch they fearless hide, 

Tho' bulky forms drive on the rising tide. — 

Of all oviparous kinds that throng the seas, 

The fond Blue Sharks in tender care surpass. — 

They near their fondlings, like some careful nurse. 

Observe their motions and restrain their course, 

Eye every wave, and shew the doubtful way. 

Teach where to hunt, and where to find their prey. 

When big with secret guilt the waters heave. 

They in their mouths their shelter'd young receive. 

But when the waves at their own leisure roll, 

And no fierce robber drives the scatter’d shoal, 

Again the parent's pointed jaws compress’d 
By force expel them from their pleasing rest.” 

Ori’iAN, Hal., b i. 

A method of taking this or a kindred species is thus described: 

“When fishers meet the Shark’s rapacious young. 

Loos'd I'rom its oar the tatter'd rope is flung 
Unarm'd below; th’ imprudent wanton flies 
With eager jaws, and grasps the worthless prize. 

Hooks ev'n the prey supplies; with mimerous ehalus 
His teeth recurve the entangled flax retains. 

Easy the fisher’s toil; the slave self-bound. 

Mounts on the barbed spears retentive wound.” 

B. 5. 

Another Greek writer, iElian, who wrote about the same 
time with Oppian, but who cannot be regarded in any other 
light than as an industrious and indiscriminate collector of frao-- 
ments which floated on the surface of society, repeats in humble 
prose the same opinions regarding their affection for their young; 
hut he ascribes this affection to the father, and extends it also 
to the Galeus, which is one that he supposes to keep generally 


32 


BLUB SHARK. 


at the bottom of the sea. The mistake of supposing that this fish 
produces its young from eggs, is common to both those 
authors; but the supposition countenanced by the latter, that the 
Galeus produces its young at the mouth, may be regarded as 
no other than an ignorant surmise, by an observer who might 
suppose that what he saw of the return of young ones from 
their hiding place, was really their first appearance in the world 
of waters. 

But it must be admitted that hitherto on this subject we 
may justly be suspected to have been wandering in the region 
of fable; and that facts mentioned by those ancient authors are 
so often mingled with false conclusions, superstition, and errors, 
as to render it difficult to separate one from the other. We 
allege, on the other hand however, that, even when this is 
allowed, the information thus conveyed is so far a matter of 
interest as, according to information afforded us by a commen- 
tator on Oppian, the opinion of its certainty is several times 
referred to by some of the fathers of the church; and thus is 
metaphorically employed towards spiritual uses. 

But incredible as this strange proceeding may appear to us, 
it receives corroboration from the authority of Bondeletius, 
who was a physician of eminence, and Professor of Natural 
History in the College of Montpellier; and whose book on the 
“History of Fishes,” is still held in high estimation. He speaks 
of the Thrasher, ( Alopecias tulpesj as receiving its young in 
this manner when in danger, as we shall shew more at large 
when we treat of that fish; and besides the evidence of those 
whom we may suppose ignorant sailors, 1 have received the 
following information from a gentleman, who was on board a 
ship, of which his father, a captain in the Royal Navy, was 
commander, in or near the tropics. A Shark had seized the 
hook, and was about to be hauled on board, when four young 
ones were seen to escape from it; and being then drawn on 
deck, three more of them were cut out from the stomach or 
mouth. Placed in a vessel of water they were kept alive for 
three days afterwards, and appeared to have suffered nothing 
from their strange confinement. 

The impossibility of surviving such an imprisonment as is 
here supposed, has been urged in proof that even if the young 
have been found inclosed within the stomach, or have been 


BI,UE SHABK. 


33 


seen to enter the mouth, the circumstance is to be explained 
by the well-known rapacious appetite of the parent, rather than 
by its affection; and that it will require both a closer and longer 
continued observation to render the more amiable motive the 
undeniable one. But that the young may be received into the 
stomach and return without injury, appears from evidence 
adduced by Mr. Darwin, in his “Journal of a Voyage round 
the World.” “I have heard,” says he, “from Dr. Allen, of 
Forres, that he has frequently found a Diodon, floating alive and 
distended, in the stomach of the Shark; and that on several 
occasions he has known it eat its way, not only through the 
coats of the stomach, but through the .sides of the monster, 
which has thus been killed.” It is further known of all the 
Sharks, that they possess a power of throwing up from the 
stomach at their will anything they find indigestible; so that 
the natural difficulties of the ease are less than they appear. 

From its well-known destructive character flshermen are 
alvays eager to shorten the race of this fish; and in consequence 
many hundreds of them are caught in the course of a season. 
But the capture is of no intrinsic value, for it yields no other 
profit than some oil from the liver, and the body for manure. 

Jonston, in common with other writers, describes this fish as 
having teeth with serrated edges; but Lacepede, vol. i., knows 
no other but a Blue Shark with teeth specially described as 
having edges not serrated. Risso, Icthyologie, p. 26, describes 
a Blue Shark with the same characters as those of Lacepede; 
but he also gives another species, which he rightly believes to 
be the true Squalus glaucus of Avtedi, and consequently of 
Linnaeus, having serrated teeth, but with brilliant silvery bands 
on the sides; and which he names S. Rondeletii. 

Willoughby’s description is of a young one, having only one 
row of teeth, which are serrated; but he says they are distant 
from each other in the jaw; which remark can only refer to 
their very early condition, for each succeeding row is followed 
by another row, to close up the vacancies of that before it; 
so that when in the progress of growth they become pressed 
together, they overlap each other and become contiguous. 

I have already given in our general history of the Sharks, 
a short account of the manner in which the teeth of this order 
of fishes are formed, and finally proceed to their decay and 
VOL. I. F 


BLrE SHARK. 


Si 

loss; but as there is some degree of variety in the way in 
which this process takes place in the different species, I will 
enter a little further into the description of it as I have 
observed it in the present one. 

We have already seen that the seat of the tooth-formiiig 
process is in a thick membrane, which covers the jaws on their 
inner surface, and which passes over them externally. This 
membrane is in a condition of perpetual production, and at its 
origin is formed into a series of cells or doublings, in each of 
which the germ of a tooth may be discovered, soft and mem- 
branous, and seemingly nourished from the sides of the sac or 
cell itself. It lies flat along the course of the membrane that 
contains it, with the point directed downward in the lower jaw, 
and towards the roof of the mouth in the upper jaw ; in such 
a manner as that in passing to its final destination, it has to 
go through the third part of a circle, in the course of which 
the upper doubling of the containing cell becomes torn through 
its substance. The enamel of these teeth has no existence at 
first; so that their substance is as soft and flexible as parchment; 
but as their growth proceeds the nourishment from the sides 
of the cell ceases, so that at last it is furnished only from the 
root; and at this stage the circulation of nutriment by the 
vessels appears to be from near the point, along the middle 
line of each tooth, along which the solid firmness they at last 
obtain is clearly to be discerned. 'I" o membrane within which 
these teeth have been formed, is itself constituted of longitudinal 
fibres, of some degree of firmness, with softer cellular membrane 
at the part in which the teeth receive their actual formation; 
and as in the course of nature, the former become more rigid 
from defect of nourishment, they contract in their substance, 
and thus draw the roots of the teeth nearer to the situation 
they are destined to occupy, but still leaving a vacancy which 
can only be supplied by the successive formation of teeth in 
alternate order; the cells of one row being opposite to the 
vacancies of the other, and only pressed closer, because 
the fibrous membrane connecting them has in time admitted 
of a more idgid contraction. In some species of this great 
family, as the Monkfish, ( Sqtiatina angelus,) and many of the 
Ray tribe, the teeth cells are arranged in regular linear suc- 
cession, without the filling up of the vacancies between them; 


BLUE SHARK. 


35 


but tbe manner of formation and progress is otherwise the same. 
In the last mentioned instances, however, the teeth are short, and 
therefore are easily brought through the coats of the cells j but 
this not the case with the Blue Shark and some others. A 
vacant space of softer texture in the rear of each tooth is to 
them of importance, as securing to them a thinner and weaker 
place at which they can burst through; while the contraction 
of the fibres of the membrane, by drawing the teeth subsequently 
together, secures to them even a greater firmness of support 
than if there had not been an original separation. But the 
rigidity of those contractile fibres does not stop here. Nourish- 
ment is by this means diminished, and finally ceases. The tooth 
becomes a dead substance, and soon falls off with the membrane 
itself that held it, to be presently succeeded by a new race 
that must pass through the same changes, and be shed again 
in their turn. A limit is thus put to the number of rows the 
fish can be furnished with, and security taken that no old or 
useless teeth shall remain to encumber the jaws. 

From the references given to authors who have described 
some kind of Blue Shark, it appears highly probable that more 
than one species exist, and may sometimes visit the British 
coasts; although I do not feel assured of being able to lay down 
definite marks by which they may be distinguished from each 
other. I must content myself for the present, therefore, in 
producing such evidence on the subject as shall serve to call 
the attention of naturalists to further inquiry, rather than run 
the risk of misleading them by speaking with greater certainty 
on their specific distinctions. On comparing two specimens a 
considerable difference is seen in the form of the head and 
eye, as well as in the tail; which in one instance runs nearly 
straight backward in a line with the body, while in the other 
this organ is wider and more elevated. 

I make but little account of the variety of colour described 
by Risso, in his Squalus Rondeletii, because it is known that 
most fishes are liable to variation in this respect; and it is 
especially the case when they have changed the water and bright 
skies of the Mediterranean for the more sober tints of the 
British Channel. But the difference of the teeth is a more 
important distinction; more especially as I am able to affirm 
with confidence that this character of serrated teeth is not an 


BLUE SHARK. 


effect of age, but is to be perceived in Sharks in the earliest 
stage of their growth. 

The largest I have heard of, but not seen, was upwards oi 
fourteen feet long, but the more ordinary size is from six to 
eight feet in length; the body round and slender, tapering 
towards the tail. Head flat on the top, snout depressed, pro- 
jecting; the mouth far beneath, well furnished with strong, flat, 
triangular teeth, the points inclining inward, the edges serrated. 
Nostrils a good distance from the mouth, and not lobod; gill 
openings flve, near the root of the pectoral fln. Skin but 
slightly rough; pectoral fins large and long, although not pro- 
portionally so much so as is represented in Lacepede’s figure 
of his smooth-toothed Blue Shark, vol. i., pi. 9, f. 1; and which 
therefore, if correctly represented, will be an additional mark 
of distinction between the two species. These fins are placed 
low on the body in all Sharks, and in the Blue Shark end in 
a point. The ventrals small; the anterior border of the first 
dorsal fin begins midway between the snout and root of the 
tail; the second dorsal opposite the anal. The upper lobe of 
the tail moderately long, with a notch, as in most Sharks, near 
the end; at its root also, where it joins the body, a deep 
depression, but I have known this wanting. The upper parts of 
the body and fins blue, the belly white 



INSIDE VIEW or THE TEETH. 


UPPER TEETH. 


I 



37 


ALOPECIAS. 

This is a genus established hy Muller and Henle, and described as 
with a pointed, conic head, very small spiracles, small gill openings, 
and simple triangular teeth, but particularly marked by a very great 
extension of the tail. It is the genus miopias of Itafinesque and 
Swainson; but the latter writers had overlooked the very small spiracles. 


THRASHER. 

SEA FOX. FOX SHARK. SEA APE. 


Carcliarias vulpes, 
Vulpecula marina, 
Vulpes marina, 

Squalus vulpes, 

it it 

8 quale Benard, 

ti ({ 


CuVIEE. Flemino; p. 167. 

Jon SION; p. 27. 

■WiLtouGiiBY; p. 64, Tab. B. 6, the figure 
tolerably correct, except in the tail. 
Jenyns; p. 498. 

Taeeell; British Pishes, vol. ii., p. 622. 
Lacepede and Eisso; Ichth., p. 36. 

Gray; Catalogue of British Museum, p. 130 


This fish has obtained the name of Fox Shark because of 
its tail, M'hich, like that of its namesake of the land, is a prin- 
cipal portion of its distinctive character. But the ancient Greeks 
and Komans, who were Avell acquainted with the fish, were not 
content with finding in it nothing more than this likeness of 
analogy; and therefore they went on to draw the conclusion 
' that a fish answering to this name must of necessity be endowed 
with the other distinguishing portions of the foxine character. 

This fish is not recognised in the tenth edition of the System 
of Linnseus, but it is the Squalus vulpes of Turton’s Linmeus. 

The Thrasher, or Sea Fox, is so very rarely taken on a line, 
that no instance of it has come within my knowledge; but the 
reason of this probably amounts to no more than that fishermen 
do not employ the bait that tempts its appetite. jElian, how- 


38 


THRASHER. 


ever, reporting the common opinion of his day, supposes that 
this portion of its safety is to be ascribed to superior cunning. 
According to him it is so cautious of a hook, as scarcely to be 
enticed to come near it; or if appetite at any time should 
overcome caution, it would mount upward to slacken the line, 
and then cut away the hook before the fisherman was aware 
of its presence. Or if unfortunately the hook had found its 
way into the stomach, it would turn this organ, with its en- 
trails also, inside out, and so get rid of it and the danger 
together. (Var. Hist., B. 1, C. 5, and Hist, of Animals.) Oppian 
also speaks of the same proceeding as an instance of superior 
intelligence, (B. 3,) and from him we learn that in fishing for 
it, at least the lower portion of the line was formed of hair. 
To guard the hook from being cut away, the line for some 
distance above it was armed, or as a fisherman who now uses 
the same precaution, would say, was ganged, with flexible brass 
wire twisted regularly and firmly round it. But strange as they 
may appear, these efforts to escape are not to be altogether 
regarded as imaginary on the part of the writers. We cannot 
indeed affirm it of this species in particular, but the greater part 
of the Sharks will deal with the fisherman’s hooks in the manner 
described; and there are fishes, although perhaps not Sharks, 
which are known, probably through fear, to evert the stomach, 
when drawn up with the line. The explanation of the ancients 
is, in numerous instances, more of a mistake than the narration 
of the fact itself. 

The angry disposition which this fish is believed to manifest 
to all the animals of the Whale tribe, has been often remarked 
by sailors; and the manner in which it is shewn has obtained 
for it the name of Thrasher. The lashing of the sea by its 
tail has been known to put to hasty flight a herd of sportive 
Dolphins; and instances are reported where a Sword-fish on 
the one hand, and a Thrasher on the other, have persecuted 
a large Whale in the severest manner, perhaps even to death; 
and yet it is not easy to imagine why such terror should be 
felt at the presence of such an enemy; for its teeth could not 
do injury, and it does not possess any other weapon of offence, 
ihe motive of the persecution also on the one side is as un- 
intelligible as fear of the Thrasher is on the other. 

The 'Lhrasher is not uncoiumi on the western and southern 


THRASHER. 


t59 


coasts of Britain in the summer, and is sometimes caught en- 
tangled in drift nets. I have been informed of two of them 
taken in this manner at one time, and from the circumstances 
attending the capture of these and others, we may conclude 
that the force they exert in the water is very great; as indeed 
we might also conclude from the length and flexibility of their 
tail. They had carried the whole body of the net before them, 
until it had been thrown back over the head ropes; by which 
means they had fallen into a bag, from which they had not 
been able to extricate themselves. 

It is one of the fishes that has been reported to receive its 
young ones into its stomach as a place of shelter; and Eon- 
deletius informs us that he saw them cut out from a Thrasher 
that had been taken. The fishermen supposed that they had 
been swallowed through hunger ; but from their being alive and 
uninjured, he felt no doubt that his own conclusion was the 
true one. 

I found young herrings in the stomach of one I examined. 

From an intimation of .$lian, it appears probable that the 
Greek fishermen were in the habit of seeking after it for food, 
(Var. Hist., B. 1,) and for this purpose Eisso pronounces it 
very good. 

It is worthy of notice in this place that the author who first 
described this fish, was the well-known Dr. Joannes Caius, 
(John Keys,) who wrote a work, “De Canibus Britannlcis,” at 
the end of which, ‘de rariorum animalium historia,’ he gives 
an account of an example that had been taken in a net in th( 
year 1569. Its length from the snout to the tail was scvei 
(Eoman) feet, and of the tail seven feet and a half. He calls i 
Cercus, and derives the name from the Greek Karkos, becaus' 
of its tail: — a curious etymology for an English word. Th 
flesh he compares to that of a Salmon, but confesses that i 
was not quite as agreeable to the palate as the flesh of that fi-l 

The extreme length of an example was in a straight lii. 
ten feet ten inches and a half, and along the curve elevei 
feet eight inches; three feet four inches and a half round where 
thickest; conical from the snout to the pectoral fins, and thick 
even to the tail, which from the root is five feet and a half 
long, and consequently more than half the length of the body. 
Eye prominent, round, hard, and four inches from the snout; 


40 


thrasher. 


iris blue, pupil green; nostrils small, not lobed; mouth five 
inches wide, shaped like a horse-shoe ; teeth flat, triangular, in 
two or three rows, not numerous; gill openings five. Pectoral 
fins wide at the base, pointed, eighteen inches and a half long. 
The body measured along the curve to the first dorsal fin two 
feet five inches, the fin triangular; from the first to the second 
dofsal fourteen inches and a half; this and the anal very small, 
which is an important part of the generic character, as assigned 
by Rafinesque and Swainson, the former being one and three 
quarters, and the latter one inch wide at the base; abdominal 
fins rather small, and triangular; above and below at the base 
of the tail a deep depression. Extreme breadth of the tail, 
including both lobes, thirteen inches ; the upper lobe narrow 
through its length: and at four inches from its extremity on 
the lower margin is a triangular process. Lateral line central 
and straight; skin smooth. Colour of the body and fins dark 
bluish, mottled with white over the belly. 

An example of this fish, taken in the Mount’s Bay, in Corn- 
wall, measured twelve feet in length, which may therefore be 
taken as about the usual length; but in November, 1799, 
an example was obtained at Dieqrpe, in Prance, as reported 
by Lacepede, which measured fifteen feet in length, and five 
feet in circumference; and which therefore exceeded in mag- 
nitude that which is described by Caius. Dr. Smith is 
reported to have discovered spiracles or temporal orifices, of 
very small size, whish therefore are named in the characters 
of the genus; but after search I was not able to find them. 
The colour seems to vary from a decided blue to dark, with 
little perceptible of the former colour; and it would also 
appear, if we are to be guided by the description given by 
Pennant, that some variation may also take place in the 
form of the tail; which he describes as passing straight 
backward, which was not the case in the example I have 
described. 


I 





PORBEAGLE. 


LAMNA. 

The snout conical; bod}- disposed to a rounded form, with a promi- 
nent ridge at the side near the tail; gill openings wide. Teeth long 
and pointed, with a process on each side near the root. An anal fin. 


PORBEAGLE. 


Sqnalus eornuhicm, 
Lamna cornnhicus, 
Isurus oxyrhyncus. 


“ c-ornuhicus, 

Longnez. 

Lamna cornubica, 

f* <( 

(( ft 


it 


ft 


Turton’s Linnseus. 

Cuvier. 

Eamnesque; but his figure is exceed- 
ingly bad. The genus Isuriis was 
founded by Raflnesque, but his de- 
finition that the lobes of the tail are 
equal, must not be taken literally. 

Gray; Catalogue of British Museum. 

Lacefede and Risso. 

Fleming; Br. An., p. 168. 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 600. 

Yarrell; British Fishes, voi. ii, p. 515. 

Donovan ; pi. 108, but the figure is not 
satisfactory. 


In this place it is proper we should notice a fish, which has 
borne the name of the Beaumaris Shark, from the place in 
North Wales where it was first taken; and concerning which 
much doubt has existed among naturalists, as to whether it is 
a distinct species or a variety of the Common Porbeagle, to 
which description represents it as bearing a general resemblance. 
Cuvier regarded it as a separate species; but his authority is 
of less weight, as he never possessed the opportunity of ex- 
amining a specimen. Mr. Yarrell, also, in the first edition of 
his “History of British Fishes,” has given it as different from 
the Porbeagle; but in the second edition of that work, he has 
VOL. 1. 6 


42 


PORBEAGLT! 


placed them together, and ’he assigns as his reason for this 
change of opinion, that he had had opportunities of examining 
four examples, which had been taken on different parts of the 
coast since 1837 — the date of the publication of the first edition 
of his work — and which has induced him to believe that the 
diflhrences observed between them and the more frequent forms, 
are only the effects of greater age. 

Something like this I have myself noticed; for in the largest 
Porbeagle I have ever seen, and which measured almost nine 
feet in length, the snout appeared much smaller than in appa- 
rently much younger examples; and the first dorsal fin appeared, 
even by measurement, nearer to the tail than is usual in the 
Porbeagle. The lateral ridge was carried along so high on the 
side, as to be nearly level with the flattened surface of the 
back, near the setting on of the tail; fi-om which position it 
was bent down suddenly to pass along its usual situation on 
the tail, in the manner represented in Donovan’s plate 108. 
The two divisions of the tail were nearly equal; and so dif- 
ferent was the appearance of this fish from that of the smaller 
and more common examples of the Porbeagle, as to leave the 
impression that it was specifically distinct; until a further 
examination removed all doubt on the subject. 

This fish is not noticed in the tenth edition of LinnEeus’s 
System, having probably been confounded, as were several others, 
with the White Shark; until it was distinguished from the latter 
by Dr. Borlase, in his “Natural History of Cornwall.” 

One of the first of the two examples of the Beaumaris 
Shark, as described by Pennant, was a female, and contained 
young ones within it, which, however, were only two in number; 
a circumstance which would lead us to supp)ose that it is a 
scanty breeder. But it is to be regretted that those young 
ones were not more closely examined and described; as from 
them we might have been able to collect more clearly the 
proof of their being either of a new or a well-known and 
recognised species. 

The Porbeagle is a common visitor on the western coasts in 
summer, and not unfrequently it wanders along the eastern 
borders of England, and even of Scotland. An instance has 
been known of its having been taken even in Orkney. It 
usually proceeds in small scattered companies, preying on 


PORBEAGLE. 


43 


pilchards and herrings, and other small fishes that then abound. 
Risso represents it as swift and eager after prey, and certainly 
It IS not less fierce than other Sharks; and I have been in- 
formed of an instance, where in the prospect of being taken. 
It sprung at a fisherman, and tore a piece out of his clothing’ 
Ihe teeth, which present a formidable array of spears, are 
less formed for cutting than for seizing and holding its prey; 
which therefore it appears to swallow whole. I have found 
the remains of cartilaginous fishes and cuttles fSepice) in their 
stomacliSj 3.11(1 in one instance full-grown hakes 

According to Risso it is an article of food in the Mediter- 
ranean, and he goes so^ far as to say that as such it is much 
esteemed. This is a piece of luxury to which our fishermen 
and the public have not yet attained; and consequently with 
us it is only employed as manure. 

The spiral valve in the entrails of this fish is strongly marked. 

The example described was four feet in length, and two feet 
in circumference just before the pectoral fins; the appearance, 
therefore, solid and heavy, and explaining the meaning of its 
name— the hog-hound. The snout prominent and round, thickly 
co\ered with small apertures; the nostrils single, small, and 
not lobed; mouth krge, armed with rows of sharp prominent 
teeth, each tooth with a smaller process at the root on each 
side, the rows of teeth varying according to size, but in the 
fish described only two uncovered. Eye prominent, no spir- 
acle; the gill openings reaching up the side of the 'body, 
their extent increasing from the first anteriorly. Body round,’ 
depressed nearer the tail, with a notch above and below at the’ 
root of that organ, a prominent ridge at the side of the body 
near the tail, and a slight one below it on the tail itself. First 
dorsal fin elevated, and triangular; the second dorsal and anal 
small and opposite each other; upper lobe of the tail without 
a notch in some examples; but it extends beyond the lower, 
contrary to the definition of Rafinesque. The skin slightly rough. 
Colour black on the back and fins, lighter on the sides, and 
white below. 

I have been informed of an example that weighed eight 
hundred pounds, and another of large size will presently be 
described. This latter had the remarkable singularity of being 
much disfigured by a large lobulated cancerous tumour in its 


44 


T’ORBKAGLT!. 


mouth, which also had eaten away the upper lip on the right 
side, and which, occupying the roof of the mouth, had passed 
down the gullet towards the stomach. This disease bore a near 
resemblance to the cancer in the higher race of animals, and 
appears to have arisen spontaneously. A more lengthened degree 
of suffering was happily cut short by its becoming entangled 
in a fishing-net, from which it was not able to deliver itself. 


1 





1. — Largest Tooth of Poi-beagle, (natural size.) 

2.- Upper teeth. 3.— One ramus of the Jaw. 




I 




15 


GALEU8. 


Thf. form of the body tapering; spiracles or temporal orifices behind 
the eyes; the gdl openings moderate; an anal fin. Teeth sharp. 


TOPER. 


WHITE HO-UND . PENNY DOG, the yOUDg OUes Called MILLER 
DOG, from their light grey appearance. 


Bqwalus Galeus, 
Oaleus Anstotelia. 
Oanis Oaleus, 

Galeus vulgaris, 

“ II 

<i II 

Sguale Miland/re, 


AllTEDI AND LiKNiEUS. 

JONSTON; p. 25. 

Willoughby; p. 51, tab. b. 6, but the 
tail is badly expressed. 

Fleming; Br. An., p. 165. 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 501. 

Yakhell; British Fishes, vol. ii, p. 609. 
Lacepede. Eisso; Ichthy., p. 32. 


This is a common and rapacious fish, devouring any living 
thing It IS able to overcome; but it appears to swim lower in 
the water than the Blue Shark and Porbeagle, as few complaints 
are heard of the injury it inflicts on the fishermen’s nets. 

The young are produced in summer, and I have found them 
well developed so early as in May. The whole brood is usually 
produced at one birth; although I have occasionally met with 
an instance where a few eggs have been ready to take the place 
of a large number that were ready for exclusion. On examining 
a large female, I found twenty-one young ones, all of one size, 
about a foot in length; ten in one receptacle, and eleven in 
the other. The egg attached to each young one, and not yet 
absorbed, was scarcely an inch in diameter, pear-shaped, with 

a funis about six inches in length. The largest number of 
VOL. 1, tr 


46 


TOPEE. 


young I have met with was thirty-two, but fifty- two have been 
found. They remain near us in the winter, for I have met 
with them in January; being then about twenty inches in length, 
with three rows of teeth; the outer or oldest row of which had 
only one notch on its edge. At this time the older fishes have 
left the coast, and perhaps have retired to deeper waters. 

Among ourselves this fish is little _ regarded as food: but 
Willoughby found it exposed for sale in the market at Rome; 
and fishermen inform me that French people freely purchase it 
for the same purpose. 

It grows to the length of six feet, but is not often found of 
that size. The shape is somewhat round and slender, especially 
towards the tail. The snout depressed and lengthened, and 
diaphanous towards the borders; in fish of full size a narrow 
fold of skin passes over the eye, but I have not observed it 
in the young examples. Spiracles small and near the eye. 
Nostrils small, near the border, and not lobed; mouth far be- 
neath; teeth triangular, serrated on the posterior or inner edge 
only; their position alternate in the rows. Gill openings above 
the origin of the pectoral fins. The first dorsal fin nearer the 
head than the tail, the second opposite the anal, the pectorals 
wide near their origin. Upper lobe of the tail notched. Colour 
a dark ash above, white below. The eye is oval, and the tablet 
on which the globe of the eye is placed in most, if not all the 
Sharks, as already mentioned, is less elevated or clearly marked 
than in the other species with which I am acquainted. There 
are also -ome other particulars connected with the eye of this 
fish, which appear to imply diflerent powers of vision from those 
of other species of Sharks. The outer coat or capsule of the 
eye-ball is firm, but it becomes thinner and more yielding at 
the transparent cornea; wlirn, couaequentlv, when pressed by 
the direcror muw.tes, must become more coiiver; as we also 
find in some birus, wh-cn thus possess itie faculty oi adjusting 
vision to difiVent dfcg<e.'’S of di.std.ace The pupi! it vmy small. 
A nictitant meaiorac.e, foivned of a doubling ol the eyelid, is 
capable of being raised from the inner angle of the eye, to 
cover two thirds of the eye-hall. 


I 


I 



M O O T H HOUND. 


47 


MUSTELUS. 


This genus resembles Gahus in the shape of the body and the nos 


SMOOTH HOUND. 


eay-mouthed dog. skate-toothed .shaek 


Squalus musteJws, 
Mustelus Icevis. 


“ vulgaris, 

» „ 

Squale Emissole, 


Willoughby, p. 60 , 


Linnaius. 

JONSTON, p. 26. 

Tab. B. 5. 

Cuvier. Fleming’s Br. An., p. 166. 
Yarrell ; British Pishes, vol. ii, p. 512. 
Gray; Cat. Br. Museum, p. 127. 
Jenyns; Manual, p. 602. 

Lacerede and Eisso; lothy., p. 33. 


Th, Smooth Hound i, common, but not .bundant, in the 
«st and aontb of the kingdom in and it L been 

aomettme, taken ,n Scotland. Although I have k„„™ it c.noh, 
m Februaty and Match, it is not usually „ithi„ the roach" of 
out fishermen until the beginning of May or June; and that 
they have come from a considerable di.tmtce is rendeted pro- 
bable fiom the kind of hooks sometimes found in them and 
which they have separated from the Hne. These hooks ’have 
been formed with scarcely anything besides a bend or bow 
and a very short shaft; such as our fishermen suppose to be 
in use on the coast of Spain. 

It seems to be less prolific than the generality of Sharks 
In the month of November I have found it with deven youn^ 
ones just ready for exclusion, and all of one size, without 


48 


SMOOTH HOUND. 


any eggs in reserve. The heads of the unborn young •were 
longer in proportion to their bodies than those of the young 
Picked Dog. 

The food of the Smooth Hound usually consists of crustaceous 
animals, -which it crushes -with its pavement of teeth; but it 
takes a bait 

It gro-ws to about three feet in length: one of that size 
measured a foot in girth close behind the pectoral fins. The 
head flat and wide; eyes two inches and a half from the 
snout, three inches asunder, and oval; a longitudinal chink 
belo-w the eye; spiracle below the line of the posterior angle 
of the eye. Mouth opposite the eyes; teeth blunt, covering 
the jaws like a pavement; corners of the mouth lobed; nostrils 
complex, not lobed. Body rising behind the head; a slight 
ridge along the back; slender near the tail, the upper lobe of 
which is broad and notched. The skin smooth and yielding; 
lateral line straight. Pectoral fins wide, the first dorsal nearer 
the head than in most Sharks; both dorsals fleshy, thick at 
the base, and rounded above. Ventral fins opposite the space 
between the dorsals, but posteriorly ; the anal smaller than the 
second dorsal, and nearer the tail. Back and sides ash-coloured, 
white below, but in some instances pink or reddish; numerous 
white spots on the back and sides, in some examples regularly 
placed along the lateral line. These spots are not a constant 
character in this species and some others of this family, but 
are most numerous in the younger fishes, and perhaps disappear 
in the old. 


v>' *' 

--V" 






V 




■r 


1 


■■ -t..' 

;i _ :■ 







•■J 



■ 



PICKED DOG 



49 


SPlIfAX. 


..n.fi. M .uh.„t . ao&i, j, .Lrs;".e r ""' “ "»• 


PICKED DOG. 


SPUR DOG. BONE DOG, 


is called skittle dog^^P ''' Cornwall the male 

ttle dog. Pre-eminently this fish is called 

the dogeish. 


Gaktcs accmtUas gazas, 

" « » 

SqualuB acantlvias, 

8 quale aiguillat, 

Common dogfish, 

“ II 

‘I II 

Acanthias vulgaris. 


JonNsON; Mustela spinax, sihi 
p. 27, tab. 8, f. 6. 


Artedi and Linn^us. 

Lacepede. Bloch; pi. 85. 

Eisso; p. 40. Donovan; pi, 82. 
Plemino; Br. An., p. 166. 

Jentns; Manual, p. 506. 

Yarhell; Br. Pishes, vol. ii, p. 52< 
SAY; Cat. Br. Museum, p. 131 . 


Regarding the scientific, or what is termed the trivial 
of this fish, there is a degree of uncertainty in the ollr 
ansing from the fact that there is another species whl I T’ 
istaguished by bearing a similar arming of spines on die 
back, and which is in some other respects much like our 


50 


PICKET DOG. 


common Dogfish, hut which may he known from the latter by 
having its nostrils close to the snout, instead of being midway 
between that and the mouth. Its colour is also different, and 
that too in a remarkable way; for, as Lacepede observes, con- 
trary to what is found in most fishes, and among the Sharks 
more especially, while the back is only dusky, the belly is very 
dark, and almost black. This part is also distinguished by 
having tubercles. It is a smaller fish than the British species, 
and is found in the Mediterranean, but we have no means of 
knowing what are its distinguishing habits, except that it 
appears to be less a wanderer than the Picked Dog. It was 
Linna;us who first definitely fixed the name of Acanthias to 
the last-name^ fish, and Spinax to the other species, which has 
not been taken in Britain. 

The Picked Dog is the smallest, but by far the most abundant 
of British Sharks. It is found at all seasons on the coast of 
every part of the united kingdom, but in the greatest numbers 
in the west and south; where at times they exist in such mul- 
titudes, as to occupy the full extent of sea for scores of miles; 
and twenty thousand have been taken in a sean at one time, 
without any apparent lessening of the numbers. Unlike other 
Sharks, and almost all other fishes, it is not affected by cold 
or heat in the severest seasons; and I have known them caught 
when from severe cold every fish, except a straggling few of 
the Gadoid family, as ling, cods, or haddocks, had gone for 
shelter into deep water 

From the numbers of these fish that are met with, it may he 
concluded that this species is exceedingly prolific, and in this 
respect they differ so far from the others which frequent our 
coasts, that for nine or ten months in the year, the female 
produces young almost every day; the eggs existing in the 
formative organ to the amount of many scores at one time, and 
descending in successive pairs into the two branches or horns 
of the receptacle, as the former are excluded; and not un- 
frequently their descent is by twos and threes on either side. 
Sometimes a couple of young ones are seen attached to one 
egg; and as their development is speedy, there is no possibility 
of calculating the numbers which each female is capable of 
producing in a season. 

The young ones, with teeth and jaws too feeble to assault 


KICKED DOR. 


ol 


a full-gro-wTi fish, are yet found accompanying their parents in 
the pursuit of prey; and it is not to be doubted that the 
newly-born of a variety of kinds of the common sorts of fish, 
are the ready food on which they subsist, until they have 
acquired more enlarged powers of depredation. 

But the full-grown fish, existing as it does in such large 
numbers, is not inferior to the much bulkier members of this 
predaceous race in the annoyance, if not absolute injury, inflicted 
on the fishermen. Nets suffer greatly from their depredations, 
as well by the jagged bites with which they destroy the texture 
of the twine, even where it is not cut through, as by the 
pieces cut from the fishes that had become entangled in the 
meshes, but which are thus rendered unfit for the market. To 
lines they are not less injurious; and it has frequently happened 
that fishermen, who have gone to sea with a good supply of 
hooks, have been compelled to return from having had the 
whole cut from the line by the teeth of the Picked Dog. It 
IS the belief of fishermen that these annoying enemies are often 
in the habit of taking their station at mid-depth of water, and 
watching until a whiting or other small fish has taken the 
hook; when they cut the line to intercept the capture, and so 
cany off the prize without risk to themselves. 

When however they have chanced to swallow the hook, or 
when entangled in a net, it is the scarcely probable belief of 
fishermen that their escape is not commonly by means of tlieir 
teeth, but by the cutting powers of the spines, which stand in 
front of the dorsal fins; in the use of which there is no doubt 
they possess intuitive knowledge. If laid hold of by the head, 
they will bend the back into a bow, and so bring the spines 
into a favourable position for a backward stroke, which is effected 
by a sudden and violent return of the body to the straight 
posture. The spines are thus thrust asunder in such a manner 
as to tear any thing that lies within reach of the stroke; and 
as a defence this action is so effectual as to demand from the 
fisherman some care in the handling of it; for the fish is 
able to direct its spines with a considerable degree of preci- 
sion;- although the effort is not always sufficient to save it 
from the clutches of other voracious inhabitants of the seas; 
and I have accordingly found it in the stomach of Ling, Blue 
Shark, and other fishes. 


52 


PICKED DOG. 


This species is a common article of food ■with fishermen, 
especially in the west of England ; and is valued also by some 
who are far above the necessity of classing it with their ordinary 
articles of subsistence. It is used both fresh and salted j and 
Lacepede, who speaks unfavourably of its flesh, informs us that 
in the north of Europe the eggs, which are about the size of 
a small orange, and consist solely of a pale-coloured yolk, are 
in high esteem. If prejudice could be got over, there is no 
doubt that they might form an agreeable, as well as a very 
nourishing article of food. 

The following, among many other instances, will shew the 
error of some naturalists, who have expressed the belief that 
examples of abnormal formation will not occur where animals 
are absolutely beyond the control of civilized man: — A friend 
was in possession of a Picked Dog that had a pair of heads, 
with the separation comiflcte so far back as behind the pectoral 
flns; and the flsherman who obtained it informed me that 
when found in his boat, where it must have been dropped 
after the parent had been caught, the egg was attached to it. 
Distortion in the hind parts is not uncommon, although only 
in foetal instances, since such examples could not long exist 
at liberty. 

The usual length is from eighteen inches to two feet; the 
females, as in most species of this great family, being the 
largest, and I have seen an example, in which the blunted 
dorsal spines betokened age, that weighed twelve pounds. The 
head is depressed, the snout projecting, mouth far under, and 
armed with flat cutting teeth ; nostrils midway between the mouth 
and extremity of the snout. The tongue thick and fleshy; eye 
large, spiracles rather elevated; gill openings five, at the origin 
of the pectoral fins. The body round and tapering; dorsal fins 
two, on the anterior border of each a stout, sharp, and slightly 
curved spine. The first dorsal at about midway between the 
pectorals and ventrals; no anal fin; pectoral fins wide; upper 
lobe of the tail short, wide, and simple, without a notch; 
ventrals short, concealing the vent. The upper parts a dark 
ash-colour, below white. 

I have seen what appeared in all other respects to be no 
other than a variety of this species, but which was all over of 
an intense black colour-, except a narrow line of dusky yellow 


PICKED DOG. 


53 


that passed along the helly. Examples also are often found 
dotted over with white spots, but these seem to disappear with 
age. 



Foetal Picked Dogfish, 
with the ovum attached. 


Head of Young Toper, 
under side. 


04 


SCYMNUS. 


The first dorsal fin before or over the abdominal fins, the second 
dorsal behind them. Teeth in the upper jaw straight and narrow, in 
the lower jaw crooked, pyramidal, and equal-sided. No anal fin; a 
short tail. 


SPINOUS SHARK. 


Squalua spinosus, 
Squale Boude 
Eeldnorhim^s spinosus, 


Tuhton’s LiniiEeus. 
Lacepede ahd Risso. 


Yakkell’s Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 534 Taken 
from a figm-e by Dr. A. Smith, who gives it 
the name of Echinorhinus ohesus — the E. 
spinosus of Blainville. It is not easy to 
suppose that Mr. Yarrell’a more lengthened 
figure at p. 532 can repre.seut the same fish; 
and at least his second figure alone can bo 
quoted for the examples found in Britain, 


The Spinous Shark was not known to naturalists before the 
latter part of the last (eighteenth) century, and at present 
little more is ascertained concerning it besides its figure and 
the extent of sea through which it is distributed. Dr. Smith 
obtained it at the Cajpe of Good Hope; it seems scarcely rare 
in the Mediterranean, and in Britain it has been taken in 
Yorkshire, at Brixham, and three or four times in Cornwall. 
Its harmts probably are in very deep water, and consequently 
little of its peculiar habits can be expected to become known, 
except by some fortunate accident of uncertain occurrence. We 
must rest content, therefore, in collecting what scattered notices 
exist, with the addition of the very little obtained by obser- 
vation. 

It is evident that this fish keeps near the ground in its 
favourite places of resort, and that they are only a few stragglers 



s p 1 X 0 u 




SPINOUS SHARK. 


05 


its possessiiur tint Utti • • ^ ®’^'i‘ieiices of 

A.»ce “ “ I"”™' l-y ‘te powerful re- 

food i, auoertai. .1 tr',‘ fhT “’’ “*“»* 

crushing herd s’ubslu.oes. but t Mr T"s if “ 1 '“^''" 

ufLrfbf :r.Tir^%r-^ 'fHeri/td 

rvhich measured onTle ee. fd a' ” ‘ 
form of the teeth ZZ t U • Avith the 

large prey t to shew it capable of swallowing a 

This"^ dLriptiou r'deriv^ To^'' t 

Falmouth, which measured e^ht feet Z ineW 

Sr “d s.iLT,r c 

a half T ? ■ '" ““cored five feet and 

wL St sr„fr' ”” ”» »'»" 

six hundredweight For ^'oigh about 

. a.u indebSt JSS?.Tw ,t P 

Falmouth, to whose .tin o i • , f^°cks. Esq., of 

great obligation for commnnief i„„r„rSerfkt!ired'b “"b" 

Ihe specimen referred to eiyht font ri • i 
was in depth in a straight lineSo tet Ld't'n '" ‘T"?’ 
was a thick and lumpish fish The tail 1’ it 

one foot eight inehesin efin. Thf s nef btr"'” ™ 
and prominent. The bod; coveted from the eye ’ tf'thlTl 
with sharp sphics; but there were none in front of the evi 
nor below a l.ne cnlend.ng from the eyes to the pectoral IZ’ 
nor on the belly. Gill orifices five, short and close tovethf 
placed below the root of the pectoral fins. The latte” fi ’ 
short, placed higher than is represented in Mr. Yarrell’s fi i 
narrower at the root than at the termination, and endinc^'a^ 
ruptly. Dorsal fins nearer the tail, and close together” the' 
first the smallest, over the ventrals; the posterior edges irrca-’ulir- 
no anal fin. The tail ascends from its root, the fin part narrow’ 


56 


SPINOUS SHARK. 


waved, and widest at the middle; the lower lobe rounded and 
obsolete. On the back the colour dark; lighter, with tints of 
blue, along the upper sides and tail; yellow with reddish tints 
on the belly; the fins edged with reddish flesh-colour. Ihere 
are no spines on the snout and fins, and those on the body are 
nearly straight. 

Mr. Fox describes these spines as being tubercles with re- 
curved points, and as such they are represented in Mr. Yarrell’s 
engraving. Lacepede says they are tubercles of unequal size, 
large and round at the base, as in the Thornback Ray,^ with 
one or two crooked points to each; and Risso’s description 
expresses nearly the same thing, but he represents the second 
dorsal fin as of very small size. 




GREENLAND SHARK. 


GPtEENLAND SHARK. 


Squalus borealis, 
Scymniis borealis, 

“ u 

" u 

Dalatias microoephalus. 


ScoKESBY; History of the Arctic 
Regions, etc. 

Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 166. 
Jenyns; Manual, p. 506. 

Yakkell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 527. 
Gray; Catalogue Br. Museum, p. 132. 


At a time when every large example of this family was 
supposed to be the Great mite Shark, so formidable to sailors 
m warm climates, the Greenland Shark had that name affixed 

0 It; and accordingly in Crantz’s history of that country, and 
o her writers of about the same age, we find the Squalus 

in the hst of fishes of those northern seas. It was 
Captain Scoresby m his “History of the Arctic Regions,” to 
whom we are indebted for the first knowledge of it as a separate 
species; and nearly the whole of what is even now knoL of 
Its habits IS due to his observations. 

of^tHs'fhh examining an example 
of this fish our description will be derived from what fhe 

above-n^ed author has given us, ivith additions from the “His- 
toid of British Animals,” by Dr. Fleming; which, taken together 
with a description of the teeth and jaws presently to be referred 
0, will afi-ord matmua s sufficient to enable any one to identify 
the species, if it should chance again to wander to our shores- 
an accident, it is true, not soon to be expected, since only three 
or four instances are recorded of its having appeared so far 
south of the icy sea, and one only on the coast of France- 
driven so far from its accustomed haunts probably by disease- 
which appears to be a not uncommon cause for the presence 

01 fishes in regions where they are strangers 

Wdmg to Soorotby tho length k ftom iwelve M fourteen 


58 


GREENLAND SHARK. 


feet, and the girth from six to eight feet — thus being among 
the stoutest of this family of predacious fishes. The mouth is 
large, extending nearly across the under part of the head; the 
teeth in several rows, serrated in one jaw, and lancet-shaped 
and toothed in the other. Pupil of the eyes an emerald green, 
the rest of the eye blue. The shin rough; ventral fins separate; 
no anal fin. It has spiracles; the gill openings five; colour 
ash grey. It is probable that Scoresby trusted to his figure 
for a more particular representation of this fish; but for what 
remains we have recourse to Dr. Fleming. His character of 
the species is: — the first dorsal fin larger than the second, more 
advanced than the ventrals. Teeth in the upper jaw broad at 
the base, suddenly becoming narrow and lanceolate, wuth the 
cutting edges rough; in the lower jaw the teeth are pyramidal, 
compressed, the cutting edges crenulated, a little convex on the 
foie edge, and subangularly concave on the hind edge. Pec- 
torals large; ventrals elongated, the two sides nearly parallel. 
It appeals that the tail is short. Fleming says he was in pos- 
session of the jaws of an individual, presented to him by a 
Mr. Simonds, and which was caught in his presence in the 
Pentland Frith. Another example was found dead at Burra 
Frith, in Unst. A third British example is recorded by Mr. 
Yarrell, and is preserved in the Museum of the University at 
Durham. It appears that another was found dead at the mouth 
of the Seine, in France. Scoresby represents this Shark as a 
decided enemy to the Great Greenland Whale, both alive and 
dead. In the former case it bites pieces out of its flesh, and 
the tail of this animal is often found to bear niai-hs of the 
injury; so that Whales avoid the places where they abound. 
But the depredation is more decided when the AVhale is dead. 
It scoops large pieces of the blubber from the body, and gorges 
itself to the full, without being terrified or driven away by the 
presence of men, even if 2fierced through with a spear; for, 
like the generality of its race, it is exceedingly retentive of life, 
and apparently insensible to wounds. Its ferocity, however, is 
expended on its prey, for it docs not inflict any injury on the 
men employed in cutting up the Whale, and even seems to 
be insensible to their presence. In the absence of other prey, 
however, it has been known to attack a man. Its season and 
mode of producing its young do not appear to have been 


okeeni.and shark. gq 

nortccd by .„y b.. says i, p„d,„s, f.„ ab 

wLri I'* ll E" 1 .. of 

jaw of this fish, obtained fro„ GieeloTT?" n 

desonption, ,i,b a rep,.se„,atio„ of its’tLh ^ *e 

remarkable shape and number as well ' ’ j 

of the individual teeth as of the’ • ^^o'trd to the form 
“ine in all, as they stand all H numbering forty- 

which is unusually thin for tL edge of the jaw; 

tooth o. the „id<,rc trohlch otlTv? “■ Thosi 

but their points diverge. The most n' °''erlapping, 

.hasp point. „,tioh is%.n. wrlurrd* 0’’”““ ““ “ 
becomes thus the cuttino' ..i, ^ upper edge 

being spread out at the side withal ^^'^.body of the tooth 
-ade to lean on and recede " 

ness of 4 ngs. On Z IZ I 

five ro^vs, with their cutting ed-e 111001''! 

yet raised from the investing membrane not 

e^ect, ready for use, and resembles the 'ed! off 

the outer side, sunk to a lov«i -n. 7 ° ” ^nd on 

IS the row that lately occupied the'''' ^ ^ former. 

It serves as a guard and support t ‘‘nd where 

'•o^v of all, the cuttiufr portion f firr''’ 

'“■'"i-S i» ovdef ,0 faU .;., L ■ *■”*» 

lime rows of teeth visible- and T b,'l tbcrefore, 

formation and pro<rress with ^nick 

‘fine is more than ol ^ - 

for the purpose of cuttincr In f ^ ®®/''‘ne to the creature 
n-cl these teeth as a Iw. fetr" Greenlanders 

and Norway tliis fish was used as fool 

rejected it, but the Greenlander’s 


iJor an enmavincr of the tpotn „ 

o ‘•no teetli Bee page 0(i 


60 


SELACHE 



BASKING SHARK. 


SXJNFISH. SAII.FTSH. HOE-MOTHER, in Orkney. 

It was not known to Linnaeus, in the tenth edition of his System 


Turtos’s Linnaeus. 

Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 164. 
Jenyns; Manual, p. 503. 
Tarrell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii. 


Squalws maximus, 


« 


p. 518, but not his figure. 
Cuvier. 

Lacepede. 

Gray; Catalogue Br. Museum, 


Selnclie maximus, 
Squale Tresgrcmd, 
CetoThinus maximus. 


p. 129. 


It is rightly observed by Cuvier, and also by Mr. Yarrell, 
that tbe difficulty of taking a correct likeness of this and other 
large fishes, as well as other marine animals, as they lie irreg- 
ularly on the beach when dead, perhaps imbedded m sand or 
mud, or from the manner in which they float, will account for 
the incorrect representations of them which exist; to which must 
be added the thronging of a crowd of spectators, who press on 
the object, or stand in the way of the draftsman. It is also 
difficult to preserve the larger examples of such fishes, with 



Basking shark. 





basking shakk. 


evt » liWy to be less exact L„ 

The floure p tmder the first-named inconveniences. 

the eS” l,\f.T;n ^ Cornwall before 

the example had Mien into the hands of preservers- and th^ 

::5 Sr HVhS S 

ibtt rreij ‘rkrri 5r f i ■»? “t 

alone was able to control its strength. ^ 

confounSd wl* the matrrTh-\'^''- 'f 
peaceable habits did not a 

when It appears to enjoy the sunshine and a calm and hen 

It basks so much at ease as to suffer itself to T ? ^ 

-a: jsf 

snnfish. hw, deU;fdTi::riri“\”'^^^^ “■,» '‘■» 

.urprising length of twenty-five feet. ''”bv''h” °T‘' 

Borlase’s Natural History of On ii v ^ * leference to 

plain. ^ CoruwaU, his mistake is rendered 

I have already taken occasion to mention the on f • 
has resulted from the supposition so T ^ .confusion that 

fish was to be classed among the Whal^- 

and a somewhat amusing result was the ^ "^markable 

error; which ha, had th^e eff:c. If^tpecTXr 

into acquaintance with it under circumstaLes the ^ f ““ T 

expected. Whales, even of kr-e ^ ^ 

fiishionable dish at noble and rovV hi f """ ^ 

and Porpoise especially were admlled to That''''r 

as in the time of King Charles the First- ak , TZ'n 

ond others are so onndid .s to admit' ‘that ley ^0^101 


62 


BASKING SHARK. 


tliorougWy relished by all tastes. Ilondeletius goes further, aud 
says that the smell itself was so nauseous as to destroy the 
appetite for all besides that was on the table. Ihe Leading 
Whale, {Delphinus melas,) which exceeds the length of twenty 
feet, was one of those that were thus elevated into a dainty 5 
for it is to this that I would without hesitation refer the account 
given in “Notes and Queries” for June 27th., 1857, as an 
extract of an ancient chronicle of -Jersey, hrotn this we learn 
that in the month of May, 1575, a herd, eighty-seven in number, 
ran themselves ashore on that island, and were taken posses- 
sion of by the Governor. Each one was a load for a waggon; 
but they were sent as presents, not for their oil, but as delicacies, 
to the principal persons of the island. Pomet, an apothecaiy, 
who wrote a History of Drugs in French, gives an account of 
the value then set on these Whales; but by comparing his 
te.xt will, die figure he gives of the creature so highly esteemed, 
there is no mistaking the fact that the Basking Shark is the 
species represented; and which had thus been advanced to an 
honour not properly due to it, without the discovery of that 
error by the guests; their politeness of course preventing the 
expression of dislike, however nauseous the taste of the dish 
might be. 

This fish performs a regular migration along the west coast 
of Ireland, to the western islands of Scotland; and it is at this 
time that a regular fishery is carried on for taking them, of 
wdiich the following description is given by W. Lrabazon, Esq., 
in his account of the fislicrics of Ireland; — “If the end of Apiil 
is hot, the Sunfish (locally so named) are certain to shew above 
the water, and remain on the (Clew) bank till the middle of 
Itlay. This large shoal of Sharks yiass annually at this season 
along the west coast, on their u. from the southern to the 
northern seas. They are taken on the Sunfish bank, situated 
about a hundred miles W'est of Clew bay, and extending many 
miles north and south. The fishermen there reckon it a day’s 
sail of sight of land. They are found on the bank in 
great ..uibers, and their large dorsal fin is seen at a great 
distance, as it rises three or four feet out of the w'ater, while 
they lie motionless on the surface basking in the sun. At this 
time they are easily approached, and struck with a harpoon; 
the boat employed for this purpose approaches the fish with a 


baskijsg shark. 


03 


!-<.»; a .... ...ir i:; j^rLeZ- •»= 

if' get eiitan<?led or foul nf 

«*i. i. ..,.uci.:\riL; ::i::i‘'; t'"’ »“■ 

seventy to a hundred and fif-v r. f 

he makes this rush to the liott ii^'^ciied fathoms of line; 

harpoon. The fishermen generally allow^ 

»il .p .he .Uck of ? .el.'*:'!?™ -hey 

1.0..-., before Ly ^ '’"i ■='’'“ “ "<'« 

y-hen he iloes so they .re ve„l , eotloce; and 

three „, ore harpoons; ar.'d yhe. fte'se t.e'seed ’“f' *'” ” 

‘wyt:: re:iht:trf '‘-i' •‘--h-- 

«<i. of .he .ail. rilre,'"";;? “'»> “f ». each 

to get free, he M’orks his tail ’ 1 “®,^Sony and his efforts 

across where the cuts were mide-'tl ’ 

tire body of the fish on both \ in 

tlu-ough them; they tZ. ’ l^rge rope 

by hauling taut on the sidT of ’thrti 

slacking away rope to the other side of tS^^ 7^7’ 

him over on his back. They then s^it ? ’ '' 

out the liver, which is the onlv n t i stomach, take 

tbe rest of the fish go adrir 

the skin and the flesh as in the blubber between 

from the liver is as Ae Ath^fi r ’ 
of these fish is generallv two t ®Pormaccti. The liver 

six to eight barrels of oil.” ^ weight, and makes from 

fhcse fish are most powerful in fV,« ^ 

.. the shoulder they are very liard to klir’ T'' ''"P"""'.! 

;he whole harpoon line, tut eap jide Jed I ... ''® 

tn the body near the dorsal fin rather u*’"','"* •l>.™ 

-.11 go through into the intestines', or uei hi v 7h“’ “ 

the tstl. They must be struck with orM c. ‘““"'I* 

oave in the boat with a blew of tld , “1'?’ u ““'r 

rueu tail, if It IS at all 


64 


BASKI7IG SHARK. 


within their reach. These fish are worth from thirty-five to 
fifty pounds each; and when so many as five hundred have 
been killed in one season, I think this class of fishing should 
he well attended to for the short season it lasts, if the •weather 
is favourable to it; especially as it is at a time when other 
fish are out of season. The fishermen on the coast have a 
superstition that the fish will leave the coast if the bodies of 
those caught were brought to the shore.” 

“The Sunfish has been met in large numbers off Tory Island, 
and along the north-west coast of Donegal, where the Skerries 
men have found them at different times lying so thick over 
the ground where their cod-lines were set, that they would 
not venture to put to sea in their open boats to lift the cod-lines, 
for fear of the Sunfish striking their boats. They have 
counted from sixty to a hundred basking in the sun, Oi a 
morning towards the latter end of June; and they did not lift 
their lines until late in the day, when the fish had gone down. 
This proves that the Sunfishcry is not confined to the Sunfish 
hank of Clew bay, but shews that if the weather is not sniv.ed 
for the fishery there, by following out the course taken by the 
fish, if the weather turns out hot, they may make a good fishing 
at any point from Clew hay to the Scotch Islands. It seems 
to me that as the Sunfish bank is the first soundings made by 
the fish coming in from the Atlantic, they may make a longer 
stay here than in any other part; but boats have gone round 
from the east coast to Sun-fish, beginning to work off Tory 
Island, and making a good season, though late, when they 
arrived there.” 

From the following paragraph, extracted from a newspaper 
of Orkney, it is rendered probable that the Basking Shark 
sometimes visits that neighbourhood: — “A very large Shark -was 
caught (near Whalsey) by one of the fishing boats (in Novem- 
ber.) None of the fishermen here ever saw the like of it. 
Its length was twenty-seven feet and a half; thickness sixteen 
feet; from its nose to the last gill seven feet; its mouth when 
open thirtA' inches across; the foremost fins five feet three inches; 
and the tail from point to point seven feet. The liver yielded 
one hundred and sixty-five gallons of oil, and was sold for 
£16 10s. The whole body could not have been less than six 
tons. It was caught by a six -oared boat, and the men had 


basking shark. 


65 


Sxl’ctfk tn^the 

pot to ft, p ^ nioimng, it was seven at night befoie they 

ir, hV'sioJt »■'>“ >>“2 

caughtrLenied to i. ^hen 

then rolled itself in thj^net '* mouthful of herrings, and 

the nets, which wLe nertheT I" ^ 

ropes five times round it ’ It ^dierl the 

the men would have run a verv ha T I or 

This is the largest of the lives.” 

that from its size, and partly from S hahk!^ V 

«.<! it was only so Svtlhe r'"^‘\‘'''w'’“ 

Pennant, that it was ilisen A ^ ^ British naturalist 

b.. in i its cLXstTe:™; rthfSnVVs; 
however, we may take ^lian as our authority ^its 

S:Z:ZnetX:rht ”7^' 

Pomet, to whom w^shall hatm oTcaSon " French writer 

says that there are three sorts of i 

might be reckoned a Whale of Th ’ T’ of which 

-o are very „„eh smaller and „ Z?' ^He .a.or 

Lacepede doubted whether the 5Vhitf Sha!k T 
an equal size: hut there is ^ ^each 

nttaining anything lihe die !«« hsh as 

case with the example of Baskino- Shn V ’ '"'hich was the 
Mr. Yarrell. One was taken in rl, 1^ T" 
one feet eight inches, W wSich orl ' 
the circumference of body great ev ’""as taken; and 

enormous length. Laceped! speaks ""o^ on 
thirty-three feet in length, and twenty-fonr fceTin dre 'T“'‘‘ 
We are not to place credit, however in V '“''S''""' 
assertion, that cartilaginous fishes ar-e eve.- ’ ' Haller’s 

Hmi. . their sire, rPirst LiroViZSI;? “■“ 
P- 463;) for some species are never other tin-. ii ’ 
at first starting into existence ate of considerable’ '’ 7"’ 

»e ™ver met with above a certain 

iw 


66 


BASKING SHARK. 


ticularly referred to was thirty-one feet and about eight inches, 
nineteen feet round, and the mouth was five feet and a half 
wide; extent of the tail six feet nine inches; the weight said 
to he eight tons. As it lay on the ground the height of the 
body was eight feet and a half. The skin rough; eyes small; 
spiracles between the eyes and upper portion of the gill openings; 
upper jaw longest, but not greatly protruded; the teeth about 
an inch long, blunt at the top, and but slightly compressed; 
the body rising behind the eyes; a strong ridge at the sides 
near the tail; a depression above and below at the root of the 
tail. Pectorals rather long, and ending in a point. The first 
dorsal about midway between the ventrals and pectorals, and 
wide and high; the second dorsal about midway between the 
ventral fins and anal, smaller than the first dorsal, but larger 
than the anal. Colour, dark on the back, but in some examples 
it is described as blue, lighter on the sides, and white below. 
Fleming says the liver of a full-sized fish yields from eight to 
twelve barrels of oil; and that of the Cornish specimen, above 
referred to, produced one hundred and ninety-eight gallons; 
two examples, of about thirty feet, at Broadhaven, in Scotland, 
yielded almost nineteen barrels, of which eight make a ton. 



TEETH, ETC., OP GREENLAND SHARK. 


1. -Single tooth. 3. — Under jaw, inside view. 

2. — Under jaw, outside view. 4. — Eye, with parasite attached to it. 




► 




35 

to 

< 

s 

c, 

< 

X 

p 

< 

o 

35 

P 

C"’ 

> 

X 


pH 

< 

P 

CO 

|-!-l 

l-H 

o 

p 

p 

re 

CO 

<J 

af 


I 


67 


POLYPEOSOPTJS. 

rcBen t”the LSI Tspect'^^S forms intended to rep- 

mtended to be compS’ wS tr' «Wef character of tire TpLes 

are not sufflciently'lknoL* or SriS to* referred to 

new genus for their receptiol Tin ^ to. warrant the formation of a 

although many particularf regirdS them tho^ °«'®tod, that 

unknown, this should not be held '’snffl • ’ desired, are 

a record of what we hat Len ab e t ma’kfog 
be preserved for the nso nf ^ collect, and which thus will 

although partial like our own, maS^Ltmltime opportunities, 

to supply materials in which we ^have X “T’ them 

The value of even imperfect reeorSLs bet a ^ ^oAoient. 
instances and after the lapse of many yoam 

projectilgSL: Xhtta7moSrtLXv"%" X'f 

so that, contrary to the Ivibifs of booking forward in front 

with both eyes on aLbtf Lctlv “^e to gat 

large, and encompassing ' the neck ^as openings very 

characters are so well marked tw ’ t I Selach^. These 

'.to n.,i.„ tta it nooe.J, :: 

pecios, and is absent in the °>^o of the 


Rashleigh shark. 


Sqtmlus Ras]ileighanu8t 
Pohj 2 ^ro 8 opua Rashleighanus, 


Transactions of the Linnean Society 
vol. XIV, p. 91; Cornish Fauna 
vol. i, p. 61. 

Nobis. 


There is little doubt but that tTiia r 

fetes wMct h„e beea co.foend.J w h “he B ^ 
touch fe laxge .is, W 5“,;% 

With a few particulars concernincr jf figure, 

fiy Willia-u Eashleigb, Es,., of ^ 

a competent naturalist, and in whose honom- . 
t. it. This e.».„p,e ™ Ob, r iu«rr “ “*1"* 
icicleoce, but m wb.t I „„ prep„sa‘fo s”^ 


68 


BROAD-HEADED GAZER. 


The fish is described as being twenty-nine feet four inches 
in length, and twenty-four feet round; the fork of the tail 
seven feet; the weight four tons; the mouth two feet and a 
half wide. In the drawing the eyes are in front, and the rision 
directed forward; the snout rather small, narrow, and turned 
up ; but it is probable that this had been caused by the manner 
in which the heavy body had lain, and consequently did not 
shew the natural form. The head deep, and full on the cheek; 
orifices of the gills wide, and passing high on the sides. The 
first dorsal fin is elevated, and near the head; second dorsal 
far behind; the pectorals long and pointed; no anal fin; nor 
any appearance of a ridge on the side near the tail. 



HEAD OF KASHLEIOH SHARK. 


BROAD-HEADED GAZER. 


Polyprosopus macer, Nobis. 


This fish was caught in a mackerel net off the Startpoint, 
in the last week of March, 1853, and was brought to Plymouth, 
where it was exhibited publicly as a great rarity; and from 
which the following unfortunately slight sketch and description 
were taken, the former by a gentleman of the Royal Navy, 


broad-headed gazer 


69 

^ T^ell-mfomed individual: 

ihe fish measured sixteen feet seven inches in length, and 

the“tairri the Common Toper; 

the tad also as in that fish; no ridge at the hinder part of the 

Slmrks"''*‘The^ generality of 

S'ovl thTh ^hrwLd; 

smgularly widened'^ Aat parfi'^VCTe’etT flaT Ixa U 
the Thornback Ray or Ray-mouthed DoS tCZI ' ' ' " 

another opening^ PeMoral fins nM o > *PP“™<1 like 

to its size as "in the bI 4”i Th.“ ,”"■ '” 7”“'“" 
anterior to the ventrals- .hr. j . ™'' *1” 

other. No opiracie"“\^t 

b o™, hghKr on the belly. A female. Girth afthe p«„ral 
fins five feet ten inches; width across the head three 7t ■ 

h^rtrle? r 1-^''”",Y - lth;t.eT. 

tan 10 tr test. Jhe liver yielded twelve gallons of oil. 



HEAD OP broad-headed 


gazer,— UPPER SIDE, 


70 


Z Y'G^jSTA. 

The form of the head extended sideways, with the eyes at the 
extremity of the lateral extension, and the nostrils on the anterior edge 
of it. 


HAMMER-HEAD. 


BALANCE FISH. 


Sqiidhis Zygmna, 
Zygmna malleus. 


it (( 

Squale marteau, 
« a 

t( <( 

it* a 


Linn^tjs. 

OnviEa. JoNSTON ; Punctnm 7, tab. 78, 
but he is mostly a copyi.st. 

Willoughby; p. 55, tab. B 1. 

Lacepede. Eisso. Bloch; pi. 117. 

Lowe; Pishes of Madeira, tab. 12. 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 607. 

Yarrell; British Pishes, 2nd. edition, 
vol. ii, p. 504. I am informed that 
the figure which Mr. Yarrell gave 
in his first edition, p. 406, is that 
which has been called Z. Blochii, and 
which is the foetal condition of Z. 
latieeps. This figure is omitted in 
his second edition. 


The ancient Greek writers were acquainted, with this fish, 
which they called Zygmna, or the Balance, from the form of 
its head. But it is not named by Pliny, the general copyist 
of the Greeks, although it finds a place in the writings of 
Oppian and ^lian, who however only or chiefiy regard it as 

The monstrous Balance Pish of ugly shape. 

Oppian only goes a little further, by a pardonable exaggeration, 
to compare it with the lion: — 

But what’s the lion! sharper weapons arm 
The Balance Pish, and keener furies warm; 



1 

r 



Hammer-head. 




I 



ttAMMER-HEAD. 

his testimony ’Jith T •‘° Lacepede unites 

finding the mention of thi” fith w of T^ of dnnate, without 
suffered from it. ^ ^hey have 

b JS i'".::: -r:-, t-^ 

the White or Eke Shark, would t‘t o,“‘® f®~'’ 
seem, probable that the nature of It, fi t “"'* ‘‘ 

indlscriBmate kind a. their, i, knoL to be “ ”°‘ 

a few exa“p”eTa“‘'orr«ord oTk”"’ “ °" “'f 

Island.; which thcreforr . m the British 

of its raiio-e Besides the^ P^o a ly the most northern limit 

the skeleton if p " .d k hTt' ‘"'““r”'*’ 
at Penzance, an’other was taken ^“7 " f ““‘"P 

1829, and a third at Tenby in Wal the year 

Yarrcll, and the latter alio by ll w “f' 

Fauna of Swansea.” This ]a<st i in his 

August was found to contain thirtr^^'^^ “ 

exclusion. Mr. Lowe found this £h7nTT-°''"® 

«ays It IS not uncommon in the mL 

September. -'Itditerranean from July to 

In the month of November y* 

■a Cornwall, „„ hauling thelr nel i„„Tf f^NewIyn. 

0 . Balance shark; and fr'em IhHIl 1 ^■‘’ «™'»«-head, 

hut poo, ly preserved, ll.e followiig de.crhnbf ofTh'"'"’ 

IS derived:— The length of the n« .1 ^ ^ ®Pccies 

an inch less than ten feet; girth of"the''r'r^t example was 
iaches; the head slightly fe’stf^ld /„ tn^ hit t 
three feet; an eye at each extremity of tb’ ^ 
as that of an ox. The nostrils al tie a 
expansion, not far from the eyes A 

across this expansion of the head bei lies 

orbital processes of the skull Th ®lt>"gation of the 

1-e-shoe, with three rows f tee I TThe ^ 

reetti m the upper jaw, and 


72 


ItAMMER-HEAD. 


two in tlie lower; the teeth sharp, the points inclined towards 
the angle of the mouth, and serrated below on the concave 
edge. The first dorsal fin sixteen inches long, but a little way 
behind the pectorals. Pectorals eighteen inches long. The 
second dorsal and anal opposite each other, and far behind; 
both dorsals and anal lengthened out posteriorly; a depression 
at the upper root of the tail. Upper lobe of the tail three 
feet long, under lobe sixteen inches. The colour brown on 
the back, lighter below. 



TEETH OE HAMMER-HEAD. 


J. — Front teeth. 


2. — Side tooth above. 


3.— Side tooth below. 




I 

I 


■< 

7 


MONKFISH. 


SaUATTNA. 

Tlie head separated from^ the^el” posteriorly, 

terminal; eyes on the unner snrf.'' Peo'toral fins by a neck; mouth 
caudal, which is placed aFtho cnd^ of tlm “bodV 


monkfish. 

angel-fish, lewis, shark rav 

^KARK ray. KINGSTON. 
mongrel SKATE. PUPPY-FISH. 

Til© 

has receiYe7lhfLlrof'lni7FSf >“ Mungs, from which it 

tliis structure has caused it tn ^ ui ^ because 

^^^’Sionists. resemble the cowl worn by that class of 

Squaln, Squatina, 

C< 

Squatina Anijdus, 

(( 

Sqmtina et Anndns 


Squale Ange, 
Squatine Ange, 
Squatina vulgaris 

tt ' ’ 


fjiNNA:TJ8. Donovan, pi. 17. 

^ocH’s Plates, 116, from a dried skin. 
Cuvier. Jenyns; Alauual, p. 607. 
Yarrell; Br. Pishes, vol. ii, p. 630. 
marinus, Jonston, p. 49 . 

■Willoughby, p. 79, Tab. D. 3. 

Lacepede. 

Risso. Fleming; Br. An., p. 169. 

Cray; Catalogue of Br. Museum, p. 13,3. 
Swainson; Natural History of Pishes, etc 
vol. i, p. 185. 


north, althoiiffh it h. proceed to the 

'fco Otitne; J:™ “ f» in 'het direotie.r 

rises high iu the ^ ''‘® g'oimd, and rarely 

to be ea.er ^ the ‘"/“T' ‘"’■“"S'' •PPOO™ 

•ith a hC than ! i ‘‘ " fhon 

hoe than „.ny ei,c„„s„„e can 

M 


74 


MONKFISH. 


only be explained by its being more select in its appetite for 
food. One which measured four feet six inches in length, had 
ill its stomach twenty-eight opercula, or head-covers of whelks, 
without the shells, which latter had been thrown up from the 
stomach, as the Sharks and Skates are known to do with 
whatever indigestible materials they occasionally swallow. And 
besides these remains of what appears to have been a favourite 
food, there were also fragments of small fishes, and two stones 
about the size of nutmegs, which probably had been taken 
in consequence of having been covered with some sorts of 
encrusting corals, and would have also been thrown up from 
the stomach in their turn. 

Oppian says that it produces young twice in the year, by 
which he may be understood to mean no more than that some 
of them are found in a fertile condition at opposite seasons. 
I have found the eggs as large as walnuts in May, and the 
young, usually to about twenty, to be expelled all at once in 
July, on the instant when the pregnant fish was taken into 
the boat. Risso mentions the same thing, and ascribes the 
sudden parturition to faintness produced by the cessation of 
the action of the gills, but more probably it proceeds from the 
alarm of capture. These young ones are about a foot in 
length, and closely resemble the parent fish, even to the 
roughness of the skin and spines, with teeth also in the jaws. 

The ancients believed that this fish had an affection for its 
young similar to that displayed by the Blue Shark and some 
others of that race; according to a maxim which they regarded 
as universal, that it was the property of every creature which 
produces its young alive, to manifest love for their preserva- 
tion. In the present instance, in the prospect of danger they 
supposed it shewn by affording them shelter in the depression 
between the head and pectoral fins. 

The skin of this fish was anciently of much use in the arts, 
being of that particular degree of roughness which fitted it 
for polishing ivory and wood; on which account the fish was 
called by the Greeks Rhine, or the file. 

It is disregarded as food in the present day, but in ancient 
times it was otherwise. Paulus jEgineta, a physician of Greece, 
speaking of cartilaginous fishes, says; — “The Torpedo and 
Firefiair have soft and sweet flesh, which is easily digested; 


monkfish. 


75 


and SoTd no!r- 

uiishment. of a stronger kind ” B 1 0 d"? 

» ^lrfe«‘’“TE” 'm r l«g-l.'of iev™ 

nian and’ ^ad seen it about the length of 

^ith us commolW'^^ liundred and sixty pounds; but 

b’-eadth at four to five feet, Kdth a 

length. Tb. pectoral fins considerably exceeding half the 

bnt most so depressed, 

The head termination of the ventral fins, 

aharp hooko^ u terminal, with rows of short, 

the rows- n lengthened order, and intervals between 

and havin.. ? t ‘^outh, 

amall senar f Wocess projecting from it. Eyes 

‘=ovei;d wi r^T^”'" 

shaped Tbl Spiracles large, half-moon- 

eyes ’g;ii ?“^'^'oxity forward,— considerably behind the 

fins widelv The pectoral 

fieing unito'rf r ’• the sides of the head without 

Sharks or Rav ' T 1 ", 

^ row of sninp!’;! ^PP®^ surface; 

circle of them b J^ack to the first dorsal fin; a half 

some examples 

fiorsd fins Ted"? «f the 

part of the b d n- fi*^® two, on the more slender 

tfie lower ba^f irregular, and 

^rey, speck !d extended than the upper. Colour sandy 

are often mottl^ below. In young examples, which 
'rhite line or green, there is sometimes a 

fifil-grown exa shoulders. I have seen a 

back 1’ ® the usual line of spines along the 

much like whar^*^^^ pectoral fins are 

do not t - the Skates, but the jointed 

®top short and "1"'" ^'’t 

fio the’ ve^ar im O 

fonnd to nos<!P i- - minute dissection it has been 

tacted als^ in tl ®trncture, such as Monro de- 

-fiere th ^‘>"tanel or opening 

brain is covered only with the firm skin, as in the 


76 


MONKFISH. 


Sharks and Skates, thus affording an example, in addition to 
the cartilaginous condition of the bone itself, of apparent 
conformity with the earlier stage of existence of mammalian 
animals; and which some writers have thought proper to regard 
as a defect, or at least an inferior state of development; but 
which, as we have ali'eady shewn on the authority of Mr. 
Owen, when we spoke of the Sharks in general, beyond doubt 
answers an important use in the natural occonomy of this 
great family of animals. We remark it more especially in this 
species because it is not merely an unclosed opening in the 
skull, but a well-organized opening of definite formation. It 
becomes a question whether, by endosmodic action penetrating 
through the membrane, this is not the passage through which 
the water so abundantly found in the cavity of the skull and 
spinal column finds admittance, as we see it existing there in 
all the species of Sharks and Skates. 

It has been remarked in the general description of this fish, 
as a character in which it stands alone, that it is deficient in 
that projection of the skull which is so distinguishing a mark 
of its kindred families of Sharks and Rays; but the deficiency 
itself affords an advantage which the others do not possess, — of 
being furnished with such a protractile upper jaw as is capable 
of extensive motion, especially in an upward direction, cor- 
responding with that of the head itself, in relationship with 
the vertebral column. This vertebral column, or back-bone, 
which possesses about one hundred and twenty separate joints, 
as in the generality of Sharks, is flexible in all its extent, 
none of the bones of which it consists being inseparately united 
together, as they are in the uppermost part of their course 
in Skates; and at the tail they assume a course seemingly at 
variance with that of their race in general, by passing to their 
termination on the border of the lower rather than of the 
upper lobe of the caudal fin. The organization w'hich seems 
equivalent to spinous processes of the vertebrse, that stand up 
to support the dorsal fins, are in fact broad plates, each of 
which involves at least two of the vertebra}, and thus they 
afford the fins a more than usually firm support. In these 
particulars of structure, as well as in the outward form, we 
discern a partaking of much of the character of the sub-families 
of Sharks and Skates, coupled with a departure from both in 


MONIfFISTI. 


77 


some circumstances, which, if they point out affinity to any 
other race, at least do not so to any with which we are acquainted. 

In one particular also the eyes deserve to be mentioned. 
They do not possess a nictitant membrane, as in some Sharks, 
nor a fimbriant veil, as in the Skates, but the common skin of 
the body passes over the globe, and is capable of shutting uj) 
the pupil in the manner and with the effect of an eyelid, 
although without a fold, a slight slit remaining lengthwise as 
a pupil. 



1. — Pectoral Fin of tlie Monkfish— under side. 

2. — Abdominal Fin— under side. 

3. — Teeth, portion of under jaw. 


7S 


SKATES. 


The distinguishing marks of this family as compared with 
the Sharks, are a general depression and flatness of the body, 
with a large expansion of the pectoral and ventral fins; the 
former being united to and encompassing the head, so that 
together they form a disc, which is either rounded or of a 
rhorab-like form, with the angles slightly marked; a structure 
that displays a remarkable adaptation to the peculiar habits of 
this tribe. The snout in most of the species projects, and in 
all the mouth and nostrils are under the head, the latter 
being united to the former by a superficial channel, or deep 
fold in the skin. The gill openings are five in number, as 
in the Sharks, hut they are placed on the under surface; and 
on the head, not far behind the eyes, are the spiracles or 
temporal orifices, which, when they exist in the Sharks, are 
generally small, but in this family they are large and open, 
although capable of being closed at the will of the creature; 
and their use is more apparent in the present class; for as it 
is their habit to lie flat on the ground, it becomes necessary 
that they should be furnished with an apparatus sufficient to 
give passage to a full supply of water to the gills for the 
purpose of breathing; at a time when the mouth must for a 
long time remain shut, and the current from that direction 
consequently be interrupted, even if it ever exist. That this 
supply of water needs to be large and constantly repeated, 
may be judged from what Monro describes of the extensive 
capacity of the interior structure of the gills, the superficial 
extent of which he estimates as amounting to almost the whole 
external surface of the human body. Thus, says he, in each 
side of the body of a Skate there are four double gills, or 
gills with two sides each, and one single gill, on which the 
branchial artery (which brings the blood for purification) is 
spread out. On each of these sides there are about fifty 


SKATES. 


79 


divisions or doublings of tbe membrane of the gills. Each 
ision as on each side of it one hundred and sixty sub- 
^visions or folds of its membrane, the length of each of 

and*^ \ ^ of an inch, 

th sixteenth of an inch; so that in 

fold ^ there are one hundred and forty-four thousand 

fou tb which arc equal to. the sixty- 

or h part of a square inch, or the surface of the whole 

inci* to two thousand two hundred and fifty square 

^ 0 les, that is, to more than fifteen square feet, which have 
h^” supposed equal to the whole external surface of the 
co^fo^^ ^ Sood injection by an artificial 

of the artery, a microscope is applied, the 
with ^ .°f ^^0 membrane of the gills is seen covered 

fM ^ ^oautiful network of exceedingly minute vessels. — 
pai”"^°’ ''Structure and Physiology of Fishes,” p. 15.) Those 
t^aiticulars are given the more at length because they belong 

alth “‘I Skates, 

ind°T^i ^ degree. And, 

still 1 * !j ^ applicable to fishes in general, although in a 
the ^S’ree in the class termed the bony fishes, in which 

nianr^^^*^ through the gills in a more rapid 

ler, to make amends for the less extent of surface to 
'^°\oh It IS applied. 

vess 1 brought to this purifying apparatus by a 

poi^-f ^ specially framed to be a 

caiT^* f °f propulsion; for although the general 

prin^' 'i ‘circulation of the blood is formed on the same 

vari ^ fishes, the peculiarity of action and the power 

witir as regards the present genus, compared 

sin 0-1 others. In Sharks and Skates the heart is of ti 

oririn T complex structure, mingled with simplicity; the 
from artery, or vessel which bears the blood 

tube consisting of a long muscular 

itself f"® regarded as an extension of the heart 

a rem^^T iT tends greatly to aid its powers of action; but 

nhv«i r ^ circumstance attending it is the degree of what 
irritability that resides in it, and which 
whirl I'* powers of life and action under circumstances 
to other races mun speedily prove fatal. I have even 


80 


"IKATES. 


seen the heart of the Common Skate wounded and cut from 
the body, and aftei wards it has continued to beat for almost 
a whole day; and even when pulsating action has ceased it 
has again been made to resume its motion on the infliction 
of an additional stimulus. Nor is this power of retaining 
vitality confined to the heart, or to a single species of this 
family, although it may be more persistent in some than in 
others. I have given instances in the Blue Shark of the 
little present influence had on that fish by what at last 
cannot have failed to prove fatal injuries, and I shall adduce 
others not less surprising when we treat of the history of the 
Common Skate; but in every case it has its source in the 
same cause — the possession of a large degree of independent 
vital power in each organ of the body. 

Monro, in the work already quoted, has shewn that there 
exists in this class of fishes, or at least in the Common Skate, 
as well as in the Monkfish, a well-developed apparatus for 
the faculty of hearing, the presence of which appears to imply 
a power of intelligence for which we could scarcely have 
given them credit; but the most remarkable of the organs of 
sense are the eyes, which are more elaborately organized than 
even in the Sharks, and which therefore are well calculated 
to render these fishes effectual service in their situation close to 
the ground. They are placed on the top of the head, not very 
close to each other, with the vision neither directed upwards 
nor forwards, but sidewise, and they are protected as well, by 
generally a row of spines behind them, as by a firm structure 
of cartilage on the upper part of the globe itself. This globe 
is supported on the base of the ocular cavity by a pillar not 
unlike that already mentioned as existing in Sharks; but, in 
addition to this, the cornea or clear portion of the organ is 
furnished with a veil, which hangs from the upper border of 
the iris, and in a large degree covers the pupil, and is capable 
of doing so entirely. The ordinary opinion among naturalists 
concerning this curtain is, that it is of use in enlarging or 
diminishing the opening of the pupil, according to the degree 
of light that is poured on the nerve of sight, as the fish may 
be exposed to its influence by rising or dalling in the water. 
But I feel disposed to believe that this is not the only nor even 
the principal use of this beautiful piece of workmanship, of which 


SKATES. 


81 


It f Common Skate, 

wtl] be seen to possess a fimbriated border, and is coloured 

bl 'I altliongb all besides within the chamber is 

sio' f u >«ay >36 influenced by the appetites or pas- 
of d* -ii although it is not subject to the influence 

^ te will. It is too near the lens to be brought into its focus, 
It IS the nature of a fringe like this to hinder the defi- 
vis''^'| ^°’'i^^ation of a border to the picture painted on the 
isual nerve; thus producing an eifect similar to that caused by 
an instrument lately invented by photographers, and placed by 



wh object-glass or lens of the camera, to give 

look 1 ^ ^ vignette appearance to their pictures. An object 

be becomes by this structure better defined, 

attention is not permitted to be limited by any 
rgm that would ai>pear from a border shaped by a more 

An able anatomist might not encounter insuperable difficulty 
^hi pointing out in the principal bones of the pectoral fins of 
^^is class of fishes, what bears an analogy to the arm and 

th ° 1 tliat portion answering to 

ran extended forward to find support in a protube- 

mubVi of the head. From these bones proceed a 

exon ' ^ flexible and jointed rays, which constitute the 
for pectoral fin, and at the same time provide 

as tl/ of action. These rays divide and sub- divide 

ainonm fPvoad out, and in the Common Thornback Ray 

of in’ °i number, having in them twenty rows 

the r ’ f made like 

their ° classes termed osseous fishes, in which instance 
minute structure appeared beautifullv radiated. 

arranid '' '’^"tral fins 

VOL I ^ ^ continuation of the pecto- 

N 


82 


SKATEf?. 


rals; and the combined use of both is to raise the body from 
its usual prone position on the ground, and to sustain it in 
a floating posture, but without much power of propulsion. To 
the vcntrals, on their inner side in the males the claspers are 
attached, which are usually much longer and stouter than 
in Sharks, and which, by a complex system of joints, admit 
of great variety of motion, 

As there is less need of flexibility in the body of this class 
of fishes than in the kindred family of Sharks, several of the 
vertebrae or jointed bones of the back, near the head, are 
consolidated into one, by which the stability of that part is 
rendered secure; but if any deficiency of motion could arise 
from this cause it is abundantly compensated for by the 
flexibility of the tail, which has no caudal plates or processes 
to stand in the way, and which therefore is capable of action 
in every direction. It is therefore not only effective in driving 
onward or steering the body, but also as a weapon of defence; 
for being generally armed with rows of formidable spines, it 
is capable of inflicting severe lacerations on any creature that 
comes within its reach. Aided by the pectoral fins, which, 
especially in the males, are also well furnished with these crooked 
spines, they are indeed weapons to be dreaded, and the species 
supplied with them appear to be well acquainted with their 
use. This instinctive faculty of knowledge is indeed a won- 
derful portion of the history of animals, even of those that 
arc apparently most dull and stupid, and has been noticed 
by observers of ancient as well as modern times. Oppian, in 
his imperfect poem, the “Halieuticon,” observes, — 

“To all is given 

To know the power and nature of the dart." 


In self-defence not only will the Torpedo discharge its electric, 
shock, and the Fireflair direct its formidable spear, but the 
Common Skate will bend its pectoral fins into a concave form 
to encircle the object, and then cause them to draw back 
that the beds of spines may rasp the body of its enemy; 
whilst the still more formidable tail is brandished over all in 
a manner that few creatures are fitted to withstand. 

In the young of the generality of this order, as they 


SKATES. 


83 


P oceed fiom the egg-case, this more slender portion of the body 
proportionately of much greater length than in the full-grown 
imal; but by a process not much unlike that which deprives 
e tadpole altogether of its tail, the end that lies behind the 
isa tins gradually ceases to receive nourishment, and con- 
equently diminishes, so that by the time the fish has attained 
a out a fourth part of its full dimensions this part is 
e uced to a much less lengthened condition. In the gener- 
of these fishes there are on this part only two small 
roisa fins, hut there is more obscurely a slight border of 
“lembrane along the sides, and a rudiment that almost resembles 
^ n which proceeds from the second dorsal to the end. There 
also m a very few instances been discovered an elevation 
° membrane resembling a fin, on the body or disc itself, in 
or other of this family; and the circumstance has been 
eeined of sufficient importance to warrant a belief in the 

the existence of a distinct species, 
to I ’lotice of it was by Cuvier, who, however, appears 
^ lave doubted whether it was anything beyond an accidental 
ariety of a common species. But Lacepede felt no doubt on 

an'l ^ “History of Fishes” he gives a figure 

description of it under the name of Cuvier’s Ray. It 
^ since been detected in Scotland, and as a mark of a 
species IS adopted by Dr. Fleming, under the same name; but 
appears to be at this time the common opinion of naturalists 
at Cuvier’s suspicion was well founded, and that this supposed 
IS nothing more than a doubling of the surface of the skin 
® the back, and is not a sufficient mark that the fish bearing 
th ^ species. It is among what we denominate 

ta’l of this family that in some cases the true 

ai exists, in addition to the dorsal fins, and in others no 
os of any sort are found. We shall notice those more 
larticularly when we speak of the different genera. 

th’ ** J^nown, and at least among all the members of 

IS lamily found in the British Islands, all of these fishes 
des '^T their young from eggs enclosed in purses; which eggs 
exd^^ ovarian receptacle in pairs, and become 

^ 0 u ed in succession, in seasons of the year appropriate to 
^^0 species. These purses are formed of a leather-like sub- 
ance, with m general short but rather firm tendrils at the 


84 


SKATES. 


corners; and the only use of these tendrils seems to he by 
meeting in an arch to open the way for the free passage of 
the case itself in the process of exclusion. They appear to 
he cast at random, with little attention to security, and, in 
consequence, when the parent fish reside in shallow water they 
are frequently washed on shore by the turbulence of the waves. 
They are safe, however, from the devourers of the deep, for 
I have never found them in the stomachs of fishes. 

There seems to be some grounds for doubt as regards the 
etymology and meaning of the names of the Skate and Ray; 
of which the former have been sought in the Latin word 
Squatina, which, however, has never been applied to any of 
the fishes known to us by the name of Skate. The name of 
Ray is equally uncertain, and although it is employed by Pliny 
to signify some fish of probably this genus, it is not referred 
to any known root in the Latin language; and in Greek, from 
which its meaning is more probably to be sought, it was not 
known as applied to any known species. If at all derived 
from that language, the explanation of an author (Hermolaus) 
quoted in Stevens’ “Thesaurus,” affords the only interpretation 
we are able to assign to it. It obtained its name, says he, 
from a likeness of its spines to a bramble, which the Greeks 
called Batos, because it has sharp hooks on its back. The 
Pastinaca has the like, but besides this the latter has a very 
dreadful and poisonous dart. There is also a larger Ray, which 
the Latins called a Smooth Ray, and the Greeks ( Liobatos ) 
by a word of the same meaning, but which has no crooked 
spines. The word Ray of course is to be supposed a trans- 
lation of the original meaning of Batos, This etymology 
appears sufficiently far-fetched, and it should not be forgotten 
that as far as regards the English names of these fishes, the 
Saxon language affords a more plausible derivation; and I 
give it the rather that I have thus an opportunity of ex- 
plaining some circumstances connected with the English 
fisheries, which may be considered as a portion of the history 
of those species. 

An adventure in the fisheries, at least in the West of 
England, is usually set on foot by some practical fisherman, 
who provides the boat and her outfit, and who himself acts 
as the principal fisherman; and who seeks his profit as owner 


SKATES. 


85 


l>y what is called the boat share, which commonly amonnts to 
a fifth part of the fish sold in the market: for the remainder 
fie has a common share with his men. But other fishes will 
come to the hook besides those which find a place at fashionable 
tables, or the public are accustomed to buy, and which, 
indeed, are intrinsically as valuable as any which have a ready 
sale. The Grey Gurnard, Scad, Comber, Power, the Wrasses, 
Cogfish, Rays, and Skates, are in this class, and by the fish- 
ermen they are collectively known by the name of rabble-fish, 
as being rejected from the market; and they consequently fall to 
the lot of the fishermen themselves, who take them for the 
subsistence of their families, without deducting any portion 
for boat share. The Skate is the largest, and, on the whole, 
the most important of these rejected fishes, and the Saxon 
Word Skitan, to reject, is expressive of the fact of its being 
So. The same word is the parent of several expressions still 
in common use, as significant of being thrown out, aside, or 
rejected; such as to scout an opinion, a scout thrown out from 
an army to obtain intelligence, and scatter, to disperse widely 
abroad. In the West of England a sJdt is a lampoon thrown 
out at random against anyone who may choose to take it up. 
Ray may be derived from the word reoh, which signifies 
rough, and is indeed the ancient form of that word. In its 
simple form it is applied to the Common Thornback, which 
IS the most valued of the tribe. 


86 


RAIA. 

SKATES AND BAYS. 

The disc approaching to the figure of a rhomb; the tail slender, 
and furnished near its termination with two rounded dorsal fins; the 
jaws crowded with teeth. 


SKATES. 

When the number of species in a recognised genus is considerable, 
it has been found convenient to divide them into groups, according to 
some distinguishing marks, w'hich are perhaps of less importance than 
can be regarded as necessary to constitute a generic distinction, and yet 
in which a certain number of those marks come together with the 
absence of others. This has in fact been a leading principle in the 
arrangements made by some eminent naturalists, and it is according 
to it that I would make a separation in the Cuvierian genus Raia, 
by which the Skates, properly so called, will be kept di.sliuct from 
those which are in common language more properly called Rays. 
Among fishermen they are for the most part so distinguished on 
account of the greater size, but the fact of magnitude would be 
attended by too much uncertainty to be a proper mark of distinction, 
and it is on other accounts unnatural. A better, because a more 
decided and permanent mark is the colour of the under part of the 
body, which in the proper Skates is dusky, arising from a large 
number of ducts and pores, that appear through the skin in lines, 
and cause it to appear of a dark grey tint. Their use is to pour 
out mucus or slime, which renders the surface of the body soft and 
slippery, and tends no doubt to their safety and comfort. In the 
proper Rays pores of a like kind also exist, and the slime poured 
out is abundant; in which they differ from their congeners the Sharks, 
for in them the pores are not rendered visible by their colour, and 
the colour of their under surface is in consequence pure white. 1 
therefore distinguish the former division, which comprises the Skates, 
as a genus, under the ancient name of Batis; and which will be 
sufiiciently distinguished by joining to the characters of Raia, already 
given, the addition, that the under surface is covered with dusky 
lines and spots. 





j 





SKATE. 

XVIH 


87 


SKATE. 


FLAIR. BLUE SKATE. GREY SKATE. TINKER. 

Batis vulgaris, Nobis. 

Basa Batis, Linn airs. Cuvibe. 

Lievis undulnfa, seu cinerea. 

Skate, or Flair, 'Witxoughbt; p. 69, tab. C. 6, from a dry 

skin. 

“ “ Bloch; pi. 79. 

La Baia Batis, Lacepede. 

Baia Batis, Kisso. Fi.eming; Br. Animals, p. 171. 

" “ Jenyns; Manual, p. 510. 

“ “ Yaeeell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 561. 

The Skate is one of our commonest fishes, and is found 
on all the coasts of the British Islands, although it becomes 
less abundant as we proceed towards the north. By its 
flattened form it is well fitted for a residence at the bottom, 
where it is usually met with on a soft or sandy ground at a 
good distance from land; and from which it does not often 
rise in the water, its emotions when aloft being with evident 
effort, by means chiefly of the pectoral fins, whilst the tail 
and dorsal fins are rather employed in directing its course 
than in urging it onward. Judging from the size of its 
nerves of sensation, — as well of feeling, as of smell and taste, 
and, it would appear, of hearing also, — it is a fish of quick 
impressions; and accordingly it is reported by fishermen to 
shew considerable choice in the selection of its food, and 
from my own enquiry, much skill in supplying its appetites. 
Sir John Dalyell found that a young Skate which he kept in 
captivity would not feed on anything but Whitings, and fish- 
ermen are aware that they catch them in much lai'ger numbers 
when they bait their hooks with pilchards or herrings. But 
although from what would appear to be the unfavourable 
situation of its mouth and eyes, it might be supposed to find 
a difficulty in satisfying the cravings of an eager appetite, it 
yet evidently possesses powers that make up for whatever 
exists of disadvantage. On examination of the stomachs of 


I 


88 SKATR. 

several examples, I have found in one a fishing frog, or 
angler, that weighed upwards of six pounds; in another two 
large plaice; a lobster; a couple of mackerel; a thornback 
rav, about eighteen inches in length; and half a salmon, the 
piece appearing fresh, as if but lately devoured. 

Bloch informs us that at the breeding-season, which is in 
summer, each female is followed by several males, and that 
the latter attach themselves so closely by the elaspers, that 
the capture of the former will often secure that of the latter. 
The egg is contained in a purse, four or five inches long, of 
a texture like leather, and oblong shape, with a short and 
slender tendril at each corner, flexible like leather, and 
brown, and with, at first, separate fibres that are easily peeled 
off. They are shed in pairs, at apparently short intervals, 
without being attached to any fixed body; but on one occa- 
sion an intelligent fisherman reported to me a remarkable 
departure from the usual course of proceeding, arising, it 
cannot be doubted, from some abnormal structure or action 
in the parent fish. On cutting open a fish of unusually large 
size, he was surprised to find in the receptive organ a pair 
of young ones, which were nearly twice the size of such as 
have been newly excluded from the purse; and they appeared 
perfect in all their parts, except that the eyes seemed to be 
obscure. Aware of the extraordinary nature of the occurrence, 
he sought further, when the discovered the purses also, en- 
closed in the same organ, but in a very decayed condition. 
It is clear that in this instance we have an example of internal 
hatching of the egg, but without the power of excluding it 
into life. 

The instances that have been given of the power of the Blue 
Shark to sustain injury are fully equalled by what is known of the 
present species; but a single instance maybe thought sufficient 
to establish the fact. In the month of July, when the warmth 
of the season may be judged to have exerted some influence, 
a large Skate was caught with a line at eight o’clock in the 
evening, but it was not brought to land until the same hour 
on the following morning; soon after which time the stomach 
and entrails were cut out and removed. At three o’clock in 
the afternoon the cavity of the chest was also cut open, and 
in doing this the heai’t was deeply wounded, when it was 


SKAtE. 




observed that the auricle of the heart, (or that part of it to 
■which the blood is returned from the veins, before it again 
enters the heart for a renewed circulation,) was in continual 
action, although the other portion of that organ remained at 
rest. At nine o’clock in the evening, and twenty-five hours 
after its capture, this pulsation eontinued at the rate of five 
throbs in a minute, and probably for several hours following; 
thus also afibrding proof that the auricle is the last part 
of the body to die, as it is believed to be the first to shew 
signs of life. In other instances the heart has been removed 
from the body, and in that condition the pulsations of its 
muscular structure have continued for the space of twenty- 
four hours. 

The Skate is never the special object of the fisherman’s 
search, and when it chances to take the hook it may give 
him perhaps a greater amount of trouble than the prize can 
repay. As if sensible of danger, it will lie as still as if the 
line had got entangled with a rock; in which case the only 
resource is patience, for an attempt to raise it from the ground 
will only have the effect of causing it to remain more still. 
If, however, the head be raised, the body will follow, and 
the fish ascends like a kite into the air, the effort of the 
fisherman being directed to gather in his line in such a 
manner, so that the fish shall not be able again to turn its 
head downward; which, if it did, no strength he could employ 
would interrupt its descent. 

The value of this fish as an article of food is very differently 
thought of in different parts of this kingdom and of Europe. 
Pdsso says it is not a common fish at Nice, but that it is 
held in high estimation, and Lacepede also speaks of it as a 
delicacy. But the most favourable accoi n' is by Willoughby, 
who records a remarkable instance, in which, owing probably 
to excellent cookery and exquisite sauce, a single fish of this 
sort, weighing two hundred pounds, dressed by the cook of 
St. John’s College, in Cambridge, was found to have satisfied 
the appetites of one hundred and twenty learned gentlemen. 
Lacepede says that it is salted and dried for exportation in 
many places, and particularly in Holstein and Sleswick, and 
in that state it is sent to Germany for sale. In our own 
.lountry we have seen it, thus prepared, in the market at 


VOL. 1. 


0 


90 


SKATE. 


Penzance. Fish of small size, as well of this as of some 
other hinds belonging to the same family, are popularly called 
Maids, and under this name are sometimes found in the 
market. They are esteemed by fishermen, whether fresh or 
salted 5 but those of full groM^th are purchased at a low price 
by the crab and lobster fishermen for bait; and, if not so sold, 
they are thrown aside for manure, for which purpose they 
are of much value. A freshly caught Skate is good bait for 
a crab, but it is most successful for a lobster when it has 
0 * been kept long enough to have become stale. 

The fish leech, f' Hirudo muricataj is more frequently 
parasitic on this species than on any other of the family. 

The body is in form of a rhomb or lozenge, rounded oflp 
on the hind parts, from whence a slender tail tapers to the 
end. The snout projects, and from thence the sides of the 
disk slope away to the extremity of the expanded pectoral 
fins: a line drawn from the extended borders of these fins 
across the disk, passes considerably behind the middle of the 
body. The mouth is on the lower surface, much behind the 
snout, and capacious within ; the teeth numerous, in longitudinal 
rows, thickly covering the jaws; the largest in the middle, 
which are broad at the base, pointed, and with the points 
directed inward. Nostrils lobed, and near the angle of the 
mouth; gill openings five on each side, converging. Ventral 
fins broad and flat, enclosing the vent. Eyes on the top of 
the head, at the same distance from the snout as the mouth, 
separate, and looking towards the sides; a spiracle behind each 
eye, communicating with the roof of the mouth. The caudal 
portion slender, less than the length of the body, depressed, with 
two rounded fins near the end. The body is often covered 
with small prickles, and I have seen an example w'hcre even 
the larger spines have been wanting, so that no dependence 
can be placed on them as specific marks; but in general the 
males have a larger number of these spines than the females. 
They are usually furnished with a narrow border or bed of 
them near the margin of the pectorals, and one (sometimes 
three) imperfect row's on the middle of the back; the tail 
possesses three rows, of which one passes along the middle 
to the first dorsal fin, and the others run along the borders, 
their points directed outward. The usual dimensions of this 


SKATE. 


91 


fish are, from the snout to the mouth one part to three and 
three quarters of its breadth, and less than one fifth of its 
whole length. The males, like the Sharks, are distinguished 
hy claspers attached to the ventral fins, hut they are larger 
in proportion to the bulk of the fish. The colour of the 
upper parts is dusky or grey, variously mottled; and in the 
younger examples the tail is marked with rings of colour. It 
often reaches the weight of a hundred pounds, and would 
scarcely be thought extraordinary if of double that magnitude. 

I have thought it proper, in my introductory remarks on 
the newly-named genus. Bafts, to direct attention to the 
conspicuous mucous glands which characterize this division 
of the great family of Plagiostomes ; and TNIonro has thought 
them worthy of a separate chapter in his work on the 
“Physiology of Fishes.” “In the Skate,” says he, “numerous 
orifices, placed pretty regularly over the surface, have been 
observed by Steno to discharge the slimy matter. With 
respect to these last I have remarked some memorable circum- 
stances. First, I have discovered one very elegant serpentine 
canal between the skin and muscles, at the sides of the five 
apertures into the gills. Further forwards it surrounds the 
nostrils, then it passes from the under to the upper jiart of 
the upper jaw, where it runs backwards as far as the eyes. 
From the principal part of this duct in the under side or 
belly of the fish, there are not above six or eight outlets; 
but from the upper part near the eyes there are upwards of 
thirty small ducts sent off, which open upon the surface of 
the skin. The liquor discharged from these has nearly the 
same degree of viscidity as the synovia in man. But besides 
the very picturesque duct I have been describing, I have 
remarked on each side of the fish, a little further forwards 
than the foremost of the five breathing holes, a central part, 
from which a prodigious number of ducts issue, to terminate 
on almost the whole surface of the skin, excepting only the 
snout or upper jaw. At these centres all the ducts are shut; 
and in their course they have no communication with each 
other. In these two central parts, or on the beginning of 
the mucous ducts, a pair of nerves, nearly as large as the 
optic, terminate; and, which is a curious circumstance with 
respect to them, they are white and opaque in their course 


92 


SKATE. 


between the brain and these ducts, but when they divide 
they become suddenly so pellucid, that it is impossible to 
trace them further, or to distinguish them from the coats of 
the ducts. The mucus of these ducts is so extremely viscid 
that it is dilRcult to squeeze it out.” The author further 
remarks on the importance of this secretion of mucus to 
the fish, that so much nervous energy as is shewn by the 
magnitude of the nerves themselves, is required to preside 
over its formation j and he might have added, that this 
secretion appears to go on long after the death of the 
creature, as it does also in some others of this family of 
fishes; for it is in the experience of fishermen, that in pre- 
serving them with salt for their subsistence in winter, to use 
their own phrase, they take salt very slowly. It is found, 
in fact, that a continual flow of this tenacious mucus will 
prevent the actual application of the salt to the surface of 
the skin, so that it becomes necessary to make incisions 
into the flesh for the purpose of preserving it. Several days 
will pass before this preserving process can be said to have 
begun, in consequence of the interposition of this glairy fluid. 
It is not improbable that the salt itself may act as a stimulus 
on the ducts, and thus produce that continued flow of the 
secretion which counteracts its own effects. 

This fish is sometimes found with an irregular formation, 
consisting of an interruption in the continuity of the outline 
reaching from the snout along the anterior border of the 
pectoral fin. Of such a one we give a figure, (page 96,) but 
it is not, as has been supposed, when it has occurred on both 
sides, the mark of a separate species. 



PAEASITE OS THE SKATE. 
(Eirudo muricata,) 




LONG-NOSED SKATE. i 

XIX 1 

i 


93 


LONG-NOSED SKATE 


llaie miiseau poinhi, Maia acus, Btsso. 

Raia murmnata, Coniisl) Fauna, p. 26, but iioi th- 

references. 

“ “ Couch’s MS. in the Library of the 

Linnajan Society. 

“ “ Yarrell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 550. 

nms. Gray; Catalogue of Br. Museum, p. 140. 

It is a question whether this is not 
the Raia oxyrhjnchus 'major of 
Willoughby, p. 71. 

Tins species was r.ot known to the older writers on natural 
history, but in Risso’s “Icthyologie de Nice,” and in Dr. J. E. 
Gray’s “Catalogue of the Fishes in the British Museum,” I 
find a reference to Lacepede, who called it by the names 
quoted from Risso. Still I do not find any mention of it in 
mv copy of Lacepede’s “History of Fishes,” dated in the 
sixth year of the republic. 

This species is less frequently taken than the Common 
Skate, and not usually in the winter. The earliest I have 
met with have been caught in April; and as also examples 
of small size do not fall into the hands of fishermen, we may 
suppose that their usual haunts are, with their parents, in 
deep water. Fishermen report that when this fish has swallowed 
the hook, it becomes more violent in its efforts to free itself 
than the other species of this family. No further use is made 
of it than to extract oil from its liver. 

The length of an example of the ordinal y size Avas four 
feet seven inches, of which the tail measured sixteen inches; 
the greatest breadth three feet and about an inch; and from 
the snout to the mouth fourteen inches, the prominency of 
the snout extending thus to a much greater length than is 
found in any other of the British species of this family, 


94 


LONG-KOSED SKATE. 


Fioin. the snout to the widest portion of the pectoral fin in 
a straight line twenty-eight inches and a half, and along the 
curve thirty inches, the snout being narrow as well as prom- 
inent, and forming an acute angle backward to behind the 
eyes, where it spreads suddenly wider; the greatest width 
behind the middle of the disk. The eyes not large, and at 
considerably more than half the distance from the snout to 
the middle of the body. Behind the eyes there are obscure 
spines; the mouth narrow; teeth sharp; nostrils lobed. The 
body smooth, much depressed, and of a light lead-colour; the tail 
rather rough, with a row of large hooked spines on the border 
on each side. Fins on the tail near each other, nearly the 
length of one of them from the end. On the under side it 
is spotted with dusky marks, as in the Common Skate. This 
example was a female, and in all instances of this family the 
males are more abundantly furnished with spines than the 
females. The comparative proportions of this species, laid 
by the side of the Common Skate and the Burton Skate, 
which is another of this family with a protruded snout, are 
found to he, that a Common Skate of five feet in length 
measured eleven inches and a quarter, and a Burton Skate 
of six feet in length one foot from the snout to the mouth; 
when a fish of this species, of much less size, measured 
between the same points fourteen inches, thus extending to 
more than one third part of its greatest breadth, and more 
than one fourth of its whole length. In the Common Skate 
the latter proportion is less than one fifth, and of the Burton 
Skate one sixth. 




95 


FLAPPER SKATE 


Satis inlsmifidia, Nobis. 

Baia intermedia, Palinell; in Yarrell’s Br. Fiskos, vol. ii, p. 553. 


Dr. Paknkt.t,, who had well studied the fishes of Scotland, 
believed he had discovered or distinguished a new species of 
Skate, that was specifically distinct from the common sort, 
hut which, at least by naturalists, had usually been confounded 
with it. The people of that country were accustomed to call 
it the Flapper Skate. His description of the characters by 
which he would distinguish it are,— the upper surface perfectly 
smooth, without granulations; the anterior part of the orbit 
of the eye having a strong spine pointing backwards; the 
dorsal fins more distant from each other than in the Common 
Skate, and the anterior margins of the pectoral fins more 
concave, giving the snout a sharper appearance. Colour of 
the back a dark olive, spotted with white; the under surface 
a dark >’'rey. The specimens examined were young, as appears 
from their small size, no one exceeding two feet in length. 

With regard to these particulars of distinction, there are 
some of them which can weigh but little, for there aie few 
fishes which do not vary greatly in colour according to the 
nature of their haunts; and all the young ones of this family 
are ornamented with more lively tints than those of greater 
age, and also witli a different distribution of the markings. 
The number of spines on the body is not less liable to 
variation, but the outline of the disk is more deserving of 
attention! We give a figure of a fish which answers closely 
to the description of the Flapper Skate given by Dr. Parnell, 
except in such particulars as 1 know to be liable to variation 
and uncertainty. Further observations will be required to 
settle this question of identity. The habits of the Flapper 


96 


FLAPPEIl SKATE. 



Skate, sncH as I know it, are much like those of the Common 
Skate. It grows to about the same size, and the -fishermen 
in the West of England do not distinguish one from the other. 


SKATE - MALFORMATIOX. 




BURTON SKATE. 

XXI 


97 


EATA. 

The gjpTierio cliaracfers differ from those of the gcmis Batin, only in 
that the under portions of the body being of a pure white colour. 

We assign no importance to tlie form of the teeth as a generic 
character; since, within some limitations, they are lound to differ 
according to age, sex, and accident. 


BUETON SKATE. 


WHITE SKATE. SHAttP-NOSED )l\Y. FRIAK SKATE. MAVIS SKATE. 


Baia oxyrhyncUus, 

it U 

(( it 

Bale oxyrinque, 
Baia Lintea, 


LiNNiEns. Jentns; Manual, 511. 
Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 171. 
A'arrell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 556. 
Lacepede and Eisso. 

Gtrat; Catalogue Br. Museum, 
p. 140, (after Muller and Heiilb.) 


The name of the Burton Skate is believed to be derived 
from a small fishing town in France, where this fish is held in 
estimation ; or at least the fishermen of that place were purchasers 
of it in English ports. 

This is a common species; but as it keeps in deep water, it 
is less frequently taken in winter. The young ones however 
are caught occasion,ally in the shortest days, and consequently 
remain nearer the land at that season. It is the latter only 
that find acceptance at the fisherman’s table in England; and 
Risso says that the full-grown fish is but indifferent food. But 
it appears to he valued in France. Ray, in his Travels in the 
year 16.58, says that the people of that country were accustomed 
to come to St. Ives, in Cornwall, to purchase this sort of fish; 
and the same practice, with a little variation, has continued to 
the present time. Fishermen inform me that it is this species 
to which they give a preference; and they cover them with 
moist sand, to give them the appearance of being newly caught. 
This practice is contrary to the law in France; for as there is 
a bounty paid in that country on the importation of fish, de- 
si'i^ued for the encouragement of the fisheries, the object of this 
VOL. I. ^ 


98 


BURTON SKATE. 


payment is defeated when the fish, instead of being caught by 
themselves, are purchased from foreign fishermen. The French 
Government has more than once sent a ship to England for 
the purpose of detecting the offenders. 

This is the largest of the British Rays. For, whilst its 
measurement is often equal to that of the largest Common 
Skate, its greater thickness causes it to be of heavier bulk. 
The snout protrudes considerably; and the borders of it pass 
backward in a slightly diverging form for three or four inches. 
The outline of the anterior border of the disk thus becomes 
more curved than in the generality of this family ; since an 
expansion takes place again nearly opposite the eyes, with a 
second contraction before it spreads out to the full extent of 
the pectoral fins. The widest portion is behind the centre. 
Mouth considerably removed from the snout, armed with stout 
sharp teeth; nostrils lobed. The eyes distant from the snout; 
spiracles large, and close behind the eyes. The tail depressed; 
having two fins near each other, and close to its end. Behind 
the eyes are stout spines; and at the border of the disk opposite 
the eyes a row of crooked spines, the points directed backward. 
A large longitudinal bed near the extremities of the pectorals ; 
three rows on the tail, that which runs along the middle passing 
to some distance up the back; none of them placed close to 
each other. On the under surface a row of crooked spines at 
the border a little before the mouth. On a female 1 only find 
the spines behind the eyes, and on the tail. Colour ash or 
grey, with faint spots above; below white. Its claspers are 
proportionally longer and stouter than in most of the British 
species of Skates or Rays. 



liibide vitsw of Juw't» of Tborubitek Buy. 







c-- 


T HORN BACK KAY. 

XXII 


99 


THORN BACK RAY. 


RAY-MAID. 


liaia Clavata, 

(( 

Ilaie Bouclee, 
Raia Clavata, 

f( « 

« « 

K <• 


LiKNJETrS. 'WlI.LIJGHBT ; p. 74. 

Blocu; pi. 83, but the tail too long. 
L.iCEPEDE. BrISSO. 

Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 170. 
Jenyns; Manual, p. 205. 

Yarrell; Br. Fisbes, vol. ii, p. 582. 
Gray; Catalogue Br. Museum, p. 136. 


This is one of the coiiinioiiest of the Hays, auJ the most 
valued; as it affords a large amount of nourishment in a form 
readily digested by the stomach. By fishermen accordingly it 
is frequently reserved in a salted state for the subsistence of 
their families, at a time when the state of the weather forbids 
them from following their employment at sea. It is best 
preserved under heavy pressure; as we are informed is also 
the case with the Skate in some parts of Scotland; par- 
ticularly in the Moray Firth. But, as we learn from Walter 
Gre<^or, Esq., of Macduff, in the practice of that neighbourhood 
the use of salt is dispensed with. Large stones are heaped upon 
them in order to press out the juices; and the only attention 
paid to it afterwards is, to secure it from rain and moisture. 
The water in which either of these fishes has been boiled, 
employed as a bath, is in repute for the cure of the gout. 

The Thornback is found in shallower water, and nearer land, 
than most others of this family; and in consequence is taken 
at all seasons. But its numbers are much lessened of late years; 
the cause of which is supposed to be the increased practice of 
fishing with trawls; by which not only the young ones, too 
small^to be used as food, are destroyed, but the ground is torn 
up, and the food on which the fish must subsist dispersed, 
with the destruction of the shelter necessary for the perfection 


100 


THORNBACK RAY. 


of the eggs. A similar charge is laid against the trawl as 
regards several other sorts of fish; and it is to be regretted that 
what is otherwise a very valuable employment, and an excellent 
nursery for sailors, cannot be followed without inflicting injury 
on their brethren of the line and net; the opposite of which 
might be the case if some regulations regarding the times and 
distances of this sort of fishing were brought into action. 

This species is particular in the selection of its food; so that 
from being scarce it has become suddenly abundant on a change 
of bait; the pilchard and herring being amongst its choicer 
morsels; but it also feeds on crabs and other crustaceans in 
great abundance. 

It is sometimes known to come to the surface, even over a 
considerable depth of water; and in the month of March fish- 
ermen have noticed many at a distance of several miles from 
each other, where the water has been more than thirty fathoms 
in depth, stemming the tide without difficulty, but neglecting 
the offer of a bait. The Common Skate has been seen near 
the surface under the same circumstances; and it has been 
supposed that this occasional habit is in some way connected 
with the season of propagation. The egg cases are deposited 
in succession in May and June; and it has been remarked that 
females are met with in greater numbers than males. 

In an example three feet two inches in length, the tail 
measured eighteen inches and the breadth twenty-eight inches; 
the widest extent being behind the middle of the disk. The 
snout short, to the eye five inches and a half; the eyes separate, 
and elevated; spiracles large. The mouth five inches from the 
snout, with teeth rough at first, but generally flat like mosaic 
pavement; nostrils lobed. Border of the body from the snout 
at first rounded, then slightly concave to the extremity. Ventral 
fins small; dorsal fins two, rounded, and near the end of the 
tail. Body moderately thick, rough above, with large hooked 
spines scattered over the surface, the embedded root of each 
spine round and solid. Three rows of stout spines along the 
tail, the middle one running up the back. Colour of the upper 
surface, mottled with yellow, brown and dark, white below. 
The tints of colour vary, and in younger examples what at last 
appear mere blotches, are regular rings or waved lines. It is 
common to find some stout spines on the under surface, and 


THORNBACK RAT. 


101 


sometimes the skin is covered with evident roughness; aciicum- 
stance which has led some ohservers to suppose such examples 
to constitute separate species. I have also met with some 
singular varieties, and of an opposite kind, which require notice 
in this place. A male example, taken in comparison with 
another of the same species, agreed with it in every particular, 
except that its skin was altogether smooth, except a few rough 
grains on the point of the snout, and the usual spines over 
the eyes and on the border of the disk at the pectoral fins. 
The usual roughness of the skin was altogether absent, and not 
a single hooked spine existed otherwise on the body. The 
colour was pale dusky brown, and not mottled, as is constantly 
the case in ordinary examples; but having some fine longitudinal 
lines. The liver was remarkably small, and black as if it had 
been soaked in ink. 

In another example, which in form also closely resembled the 
common Thornback Ray, no hook or spine could be discovered, 
except a row that passed from the head along the back and 
down the middle of the tail; with none behind the eyes or on 
the sides of the tail. Surface of the disk very rough, more 
BO than in the common examples of this Ray; the teeth flat as 
in that fish, and in the centre of each tooth was a depression, 
which was softer than at the border; so that each separate 
tooth resembled a wide ring. The surface of the disk was an 
intense black, but near the head bordered with a lighter colour; 
and over the surface were scattered a few round spots of a 
still darker colour. 

1 have not thought it necessary to regard these examples as 
forming distinct species; principally because there are none 
described by other ohservers, to which they can he referred; 
the It. ruhus of Linnseus and other authors appearing to me to 
be a very uncertain species; and the resemblance of form was 
in all respects, except the particulars here given, like that of 
the Thornback Ray. 


102 


THORNBACK RAY. 



1. Skeleton of Thornback Ray. 2, — Skeleton of Male Clasper of Thornback Ray. 

3.— Superior view of the eye of Thornback Ray; 
a, the anterior part; the pedestal of the eye. 


1 



STARRY R A_ Y. 

XXIII 


103 


STAEEY BAY. 


Haia raliata, Flemikc; Br. Animals, p. 170. 

“ '■ Donovan; Plate 114. 

“ '■ Yaiiuell; Br. Pishes, vol. ii, p. 585. 

*' '■ JuNYNS; Manual, p. 617. 


In the writings of the older authors on Natural History, several 
species of Rays are mentioned as having the skin covered with 
spines or prickles, as well below as above; but most of them 
are described so imperfectly, that it has not been possible to 
distinguish them generally one from another, or to know whether 
they are more than accidental varieties. There can be little 
doubt that the fish now known as the Starry Ray is one of 
these uncertain kinds; but in our references we must be content 
to confine our notice to writers of a late date; among whom 
Honov’an is to be distinguished for liis figure, and Fleming, 
Jenyns, and Yarrcll for the descrijition. The likeness given 
by Donovan appears to have been drawn from a newly-canght 
example, and is to be viewed as highly characteristic. Mr. 
Yarrell’s figure is from a dried skin, which I remember to have 
seen in that gentleman’s possession; and it is the only one which 
I have had an opportunity of inspecting; for this fish is a 
native of the more northern parts of the British Islands, and 
has not been found in the south or west. In its shape it closely 
resembles the Common Thornback. but it is to be distinguished 
from it by the form of the spines, especially of their base; and 
in some measure also by the teeth, which are more shar)). In 
the Thornback the hooked spines arise from a rounn and solid 
base implanted in the skin ; but in the present species the base 
is formed of spreading rays. In the absence of a specimen we 
copy the plate of Donovan, No. 114. The habits of this species, 
as differing from those of its family it so much resembles, appear 
not to have been observed. 


104 


SPOTTED PtAY. 


HOMLIN. XAILT. 


Baia oxyrinque, 
“ miraletus. 


“ maeulata, 

tt »» 


Lacepede. 

Donovan; pi. 103, but witbout those 
staring marks, from which this fish 
has sometimes been called the Mirmr 
Eay; as if they formed an essential 
character, which is not the case. 

Jenvns; Manual, p. 514. 

Yabuell; Br. Dishes, voh ii, p. 570. 


It is surprising that so common and well-marked a species 
as this, should have been so little knotvn and distinguished by- 
writers; I therefore join with M. Jenyns in excluding from the 
list of corresponding names those which perhaps have been 
affi.xed to it; but which by having been applied to other species 
also, would only serve to increase the confusion The con- 
spicuous spots seen in Donovan’s figure, and also in that of 
jMr. Yarrcll, are far more frequently found on other species; 
and I know only one, the R. viiraletiis, which I judge to be 
the young condition of the Shagreen Eay, in which they form 
an important character. Some marks of their younger condition 
remain with the Spotted Eay, and also with the Thornback 
Eay, through the first year of their growth ; about which time 
they measure about fourteen inches in length. The caudal 
portion still remains proportionally longer than at a later period, 
and the third lobe of the tail is still wide along the base, 
which has not yet contracted as it is afterwards found. The 
spines on the disk are fully formed, but of less size than 
afterwards, and the markings in both these fishes are more 
regular and beautiful, although of course differing in each; and 
indeed they are rarely alike in any two individual fishes. In 
the Thornback the disk is sprinkled with ocellated spots or 




SPOTTED RAT. 

XXTV 




SPOTTED RAY. 


105 


rin^s, of a yellow colouv, witli a clurk margin; tlicir 

distribution having some degree of regularity on each side; but 
in the Spotted llay the marks consist of plain dark spots 
rcgularlv scattered; especiallv^ along the middle of the hack and 
tail. In the adult condition these marks hav'e become broken 
up in the Thornback, and irregular in the Spotted Kay; both 
fishes having attained the adult condition when the tail has 
become shortened at the end, and the third fin at its extieinity 
has disapiicared. 

The name of Sharp-nosed llay is scarcely more appropriate 
than that of Mirror Ray; since although in that respect it does 
a little exceed the Common Thornback, with which at first 
perhaps the comparison was made; yet there are otheis of the 
tribe which possess a much more protruded snout. 

Laoepede quotes from some nnmentioned author the name of 
Itaia mucosa; and in confirmation of its meaning I learn that 
its surface is so covered with slime, and remains in that con- 
dition so long after the fish is dead, that for several days salt 
cannot be effectually applied to the skin, so as to preserve the 
fish for future use; and incisions in the surface aie theiefoie 
made to secure that effect. 

The example selected measured three feet nine inches in- 
length, of which the tail was eighteen inches; the breadth 
thirty-two inches. The snout short, and from thence a small 
sweep and curve to the extremities of the pectoral fins. The 
eve is six inches from the snout; spiracles large, and close 
behind the eyes. Tail depressed; two rounded fins near its 
end, the first a little overlapping the second. The teeth small, 
numerous, and pointed. Surface of the body rough, the rough- 
ness caused by fine spines, which have radiated bases; those 
passing along the back rather the largest. No spines behind 
the eyes; three rows, with a few others scattered about, on the 
tail. Colour above dusky, thickly covered with round dark 
spots of the size of a pea; the under surface smooth, and a 
pale white. 

I have seen, and closely examined, an example which ex- 
actly resembled this species, but which was all ovei rough 
below as well as above, and having here and there a more 
elevated crcuked spine, answering to each other on the opposite 
sides of the body. There were spines also behind the eyes; 
vuu i. y 


10(5 


SPOTTED tlAY. 


the smaller spines, but not the larger, having a radiated base. 
It was a female; the teeth fiat, as in the Thornbach, each tooth 
being an exact square, with an angiilated corner. This would 
be the Raia ruhus of authors; but it appeared to me to be 
only a variety of the Spotted Ray. 

The Spotted Ray exceeds the Thornback in weight when of 
the same size; and one of these fishes is equally common, and 
by fishermen equally valued, as the other. But the Spotted 
Ray usually is found nearer the shore, and its purses are shed 
in such shallow water, as to be often thrown on shore, with 
their precious burthen within them by the storms of winter. 
The purse is smaller than that of the Thornback, althougb the 
parent fish is of somewhat larger size; and I have obtained the 
voung from the purse frotn November to January, the length 
at that time being about five inches, of which the tail was 
two inches and three eighths; the breadth three inches; vvith 
the spines even then developed. 



Nostrils of young Spotted Ray. 











PAINTED EAY. 

XXV 






107 


PAINTED RAY. 


SMALL-EYED KAY. 


Baia miorocdlaia, Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 171. 

“ •* Jenyns; Manual, p. 515. 

« « Takkell; Br. FisBes, vol. ii, p. 567. 

>< •« Gkay; Catalogue Br. Museum, p. 109. 

The length of a specimen was thirty-three inches and a 
half, of which the tail measured thirteen; breadth twenty-four 
inches. The eyes three inches asunder, and five and a half 
from the snout. In general form it resembles the Thornback. 
Along the tail is a border on each side, like a membranous 
fin; the two fins separate, the hindmost an inch from the end. 
Eyes very small, spiracles large. The body covered with 
rough grains, but without spines, except that a row runs 
along two thirds of the length of the back, and on the 

middle of the tail to the fins; an irregular row of hooked 
spines along each side of the tail. Nostrils with a prominent 
expanded membrane. idth of the mouth three inches; teeth 
flat, like those of the Thornback. 

There is much beauty in the distribution of the colour. The 
upper surface is a light grey, with a line of lighter colour 
from the back along the tail, enclosing the central low of 
spines; and the disk is regularly divided, first by three lines 
enclosing each other, passing from near the eye circulaily to 
near the expansion of the pectoral fins, with the convexity inward, 
and consequently the shortest line nearest the border. On the 
hindward border of the pectorals are two other lines, which pass 
from behind the expansion circularly to the neighbouihood of 
the abdominal fins, the convexity also being inwards. Within 
these segments are several brown spots and streaks, and a 
few whitish spots, answering to each other on both sides; and 


108 


rAINTF.n HAY. 


the extreme border of the pectorals behind their greatest ex- 
pansion, as also the abdominal fins aiid margin of the tail, 
are edged with white. The under part of the body is white 
and smooth. 

Another example differed considerably from the former in 
the nature and distribution of its colours, which were still 
more beautiful. The ground colour was a brilliant yellow, 
marked with numerous gyrations, which were lyre-sbaimd, 
each side of the disk answ'ering to the other, these gyrations 
being formed of a dark line, margined on each side with a 
series of pale, yellow spots, like beads. This was a male, but 
the first-named, caught at the end of January, was a female, 
with eggs of full growth. About the same date in another 
season, I obtained a young example from a purse which had 
been washed on shore in a storm, and which w'as so far 
developed that about half the substance of the egg had been 
absorbed into the body. It was beautifully marked over the 
surface, and, as there were some particulars in which it differed 
from what is usually seen in very young specimens of most 
of the species of this family, I add a more minute description. 
The length was five inches, of which the tail measured three 
inches and a line; breadth two inches and two lines; from 
the posterior edge of the hindmost dorsal fin to the end of 
the tail six lines. The head well armed in front and round 
the anterior portion of the disk, and also on the top of the 
head; a line of spines down the back and tail, from opposite 
the third gill orifice; a stout spine on each side of the back, 
at a little behind the space opposite the hindmost gill orifice. 
The tail stout and greatly tapering, the sides with a border, 
and rather wide membrane along the middle of the under 
side. The hindmost caudal fin extended back in a thin mem- 
brane to the extremity, where the termination tapers finely, 
and shews much active motion and sensibility of feeling. The 
colour of the body is pale yellowish brown, regularly lyrated 
on each side and towards the borders. The caudal portion is 
towards the end marked with broad bars. Some spines were 
visible that were not yet through the skin. Although not yet 
fully developed, it continued alive in water for eight days. 
Another example, also in an early stage of development, had 
the spines on the snout and border of the pectorals, with 


PATNTF.n RAY. 


109 


beautiful lines and gyrations on the disk. It appears that the 
young ones of Rays in general are without the claspers. 

That this fish is less rare than has been supposed appears 
from the fact, that on another occasion, in the month of April, 
I saw several of them that had been drawn on shore in a 
ground scan on different days. They were not of the full 
size, and a male fish among them was marked in the same 
manner as the female I have described. This species has not 
hitherto been taken anywhere but on the south coast of Devon 
and Cornwall, and only twice, that I am aware of with a 
line; the reason of which appears to be that it is more .''i.lect 
in its food than most others of the family. It was found to 
be equal to the Thoniback for the table. 



Toung Painted Ray and Egg. 


4 ! 


no 


BOEDERED RAY. 


Eaia marginata, 

tt if 

(* l( 

Baie petit mmeau, 
B. rostellata. 


Jknyns; Manual, p. 512. 

Yakkell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 564, the figure 
from a dry skin. 

Ghay; Cat. of Br. Museum, p. 138. 

Risso. 


The length of the specimen was eleven inches and a half, 
of which tlie body, to the origin of the caudal portion, was 
six inches and a half; the greatest breadth nine inches. The 
snout projects, slender; and, from it to the extremities of the 
pectoral fins, the border is much waved. Eyes five eighths of 
an inch asunder, and one inch and six eighths from the snout. 
Spines in front of the eyes, and in three rows along the tail, 
long, and sharp. Dorsal fins near each other, and not close 
to the end of the tail. Colour pale yellow, white below; but 
what has rendered this fish remarkable, and given it a name, 
is a very dark or black border which passes round the disk, 
both below and on the upper side, from about the middle 
of the body to the hinder part of the pectoral fins. 

I am indebted to the kindness of William Thompson, Esq., 
of Weymouth, for a specimen of this fish, which lays claim 
to the distinction of being regarded as a separate species; 
and the best account I am able to give of it, is contained in 
the letter of that gentleman, which accompanied the gift. “The 
Marginate Eay,” says he, “is rather plentiful in Portland 
Roads, on a sandy bottom, and is caught both in scans and 
trawls. It is a shallow water species, and at present I have 
never heard of one exceeding fifteen inches. The fishermen 
here will have it to be the young of some other species, but 
can give no reasons. It is, however, taken all the year round. 


i 




BORDERED RAY, 

XXVI 



2 

I 


ji 




;1 




i 


BORDERED RAY. 


Ill 


and all are nearly of the same size. The Margined Ray 
prefers sandy bays, partially landlocked, and not very deep 
■water;” from which cause it is more frequently caught in the 
sean than in the trawl, the fishing with which is at a greater 
distance from land. I learn from a later communication of 
Mr. Thompson, that the Bordered Ray has of late become much 
more scarce near Weymouth, if not altogether disappeared. 

Besides its small size, there are on the disk of this fish 
numerous marks of blood-vessels, and perhaps nerves, which 
are usually to be discerned in the young of the various kinds 
of Rays, and in them only. I feel therefore strongly inclined 
to adopt the opinion of the fishermen, even although it may 
be opposed to that of so good an observer as Mr. Thompson, 
and of such other able naturalists as have taken the other 
side of the question. H.’he only difficulty I feel is in assign- 
ing it to any other recognised species, of which the Burton 
Skate is the only one to which it bears a near resemblance. 
That the black border exists in different degrees in diflerent 
individuals or situations, appears probable from a comparison 
of the figures given by Risso with those of Mr. Yarrell and 
our own; and it is also probable that it is a local colour 
derived from particular food, or some special character of the 
ground, disappearing altogether in the further growth of the 
individual, which then also may change its haunts for some 
at a greater distance. No example has yet been discovered 
in the condition of producing eggs, which circumstance will 
still further tend to strengthen the opinion of its being the 
young condition of another species. 


113 


CUCKOO EAY. 


Haia miraletus. 


Nobis, 


This ■well-marlvod species has been overlooked or mi.staken 
by many naturalists, in consequence of its having been char- 
acterized chiefly by a mark which, more obscurely is often 
shared by other kinds of Rays, to which it has given a dis- 
tinguishing name; and the mark itself having thus been found 
to lead to mistake, the conclusion has been rashly adopted 
that it is of no use as a distinction ; and that the flsh which 
most commonly and conspicuously is adorned by it, is furnished 
with no other character to constitute it a distinct species. It 
is on account of this that I shall describe the kind of Ray 
known to fishermen as the Cuckoo Ray, at greater length 
that I should otherwise do, and particularly in reference to 
the species called the Shagreen Ray, and another, named 
by Mr, Yarrell the Sandy Ray, with cither of which it may 
be confounded, and from the latter of which especially it is 
necessary to distinguish it. 

The length of an example of the ordinary size, selected 
for description, avas twenty inches, of which the tail measured 
twelve inches, and the breadth across the disk fifteen inches. 
The teeth very numerous, crowded, sharp, and hooked. The 
anterior outline of the disk weaved; the snout moderately 
projecting; eyes remarkably prominent. Surface of the disk 
covered with fine, thin, hooked prickles. The tail stout at 
its origin, tapering posteriorly, with two fins near its end. 
Spines on the snout, a row round each eye, and four short 
rows behind the spiracles; two rows begin high on the back 
and run along the middle of the tail, with a deprcsscil or 
channe'ed space between them: five rows in all run alon-^ 

O 



CUCKOO RAY. 

XXVII 




CUCKOO RAY. 


113 


each side of this middle space, and a great many smaller 
spines are scattered on the border. Some spines also near 
the border of the pectoral fins. The colour pale yellow, and 
on each side of the disk a well-marked spot of the size of 
a half-crown; the ground of which black, with defined bright 
yellow lines or patches. 

In another example 1 found even the fins on the tall 
covered with a roughness, arising from fine granular spines. 
The larger spines also were of a fine texture, with a tendency 
to radiation at their base. A. larger specimen, measuring a 
little more than three feet in length, and which was a female, 
resembled the above description in most of the particulars, 
but bore no mark of the beauty-spots on the disk; the tail 
also was less furnished with prickles on its sides; and, instead 
of a triangular bed of spines near the head, as in the others, 
there was one short line of spines, with a single spine on 
each side of it. Colour of the surface uniformly ash. 

The species here described makes a near approach to that 
which is represented in Mr. Yarrell s “History of British 
Fishes,” vol. ii, page 574, under the name of R. radula; but 
in some particulars the latter differs essentially, as we shall 
shew when we describe the true Sandy Ray of Cornish 
fishermen. But it makes even a nearer approach to the 
species known as the Shagreen Ray; and in the absence of 
the conspicuous spots on the disk, which, from our description 
of the large female example, appears to be sometimes the 
case, there appears to be no way of distinguishing between 
them, than by the textnre of the skin and form of the spines; 
the former being covered with an uniform blunt roughness, 
while in the latter the surface is studded with elevated sharp 
prickles. The spines on the tail also, are, in the Cuckoo 

Rav, longer and more slender. 

This fish is usually found in sheltered bays, and, although 
of rather small size, it is esteemed as food. The eggs are 
deposited in December, yet in July I have seen it with eggs, 
some of which seemed almost ready to be shed. 




VOL. I. 


CUCKOO RAY. 


114 



CUCKOO KAY — MALE. 










XXVIII 


115 


SANDY KAY. 


OWL. 


Haia circularii, 


m 


St 


Loudon; Magazine of Natural History, new series, 
vol. ii. 

Couch; Cornisli Fauna, p. 53. 


I CAN scarcely refer to Mr. Yarrell’s figure for this species, 
as it bears some characters which I am not able to identify. 
The Sandy Eay is a common species, at least in the west of 
England, but it is more rarely caught in the winter, perhaps 
because fishermen do not go at that season to the places it 
fre(^uents, which are in deep water at a considerable distance 
from land. It is probable also that it changes its quarters 
according to the season, for the earliest I have known in the 
spring have been found at twelve leagues from land. It is 
disregarded as food, for which the reason assigned is, that it 
does not readily receive the salt for preservation. 

The example selected for description measured three feet 
eight inches in length, of which the tail was nineteen inches; 
in breadth two feet four inches and a half; projection of the 
snout three fourths of an inch. The mouth distant from the 
snout six inches, three inches and a half wide; under jaw 
peaked in the middle; the teeth slender, sharp, in rows not 
closely placed; nostrils lobed. Anterior margin of the disk 
slightly waved, and assuming a circular form, especially rounded 
off at its greatest breadth, which is at about the miudle of 
the disk. From the snout the ridge is elevated to the eyes, 
a distance of five inches and a quarter; the eyes two inches 
apart; spiracles large. The body is thickest posteriorly; tail 
stout at its origin, rounded above, and tapering; a groove 
along the body and tail; two fins on the latter, close together. 


116 


SANDY RAT. 


A few spines near the end of the snout, a line of them behind 
each eye, five short parallel rows on the middle of the back, 
the middle row continued obscurely along the groove to the 
tail, which is covered with stout hooks, scarcely in regular 
line’s; the rest of the body smooth. Colour above an uniform 
reddish brown, white below. On the disk a variable number 
of oscellated spots, the size of the section of a large pea; 
the centre yellow, the border a deeper impression of the 
colour of the ground. I have counted eight up to sixteen 
of these spots in different examples, and believe they have 
no certain number, but they are always situated on each 
side of the disk in corresponding regularity. I have never 
found them absent, nor have I ever found the remarkable 
beauty-spot, which is so common on several species of this 
family, and forms so conspicuous an ornament on the Cuckoo 
Ray, on this fish. 




SHAGRESN HAY. 

XXIX 


117 


SHAGREEN RAY. 


ROUGH FLAPPER. FRENCH RAY. DUN COW. 


Uaia asp era nostras, 
“ fullonica, 


‘ aspera, 

“ cliagrinea,. 


Willoughby; p. 78. . 

LiNNiEus. Tarhell; Br. Fishes, 
vol. ii., p. 578. 

Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 172. 
Jenyns; Manual, p. 513. 


This species appears to be more frequently taken on the coasts 
of Scotland than on the south or west portions of the British 
Islands; hut it has heen obtained in Ireland; and in Devon- 
shire. Mr. William Thompson informs me of its occurrence at 
Weymouth, and our figure is from an example caught on the 
south coast of Cornwall; but in the last-named districts it is 
of rare occurrence. Its peculiar habits, as distinguished from 
those of other Rays, appear to have been little noticed; but 
we believe it will be found that the rarer species of this tribe 
are not more frequently caught, arises from the fact, that the 
usual baits of fishermen are not suited to their appetite. The 
snout of this fish projects considerably, and the outline is waved 
as it proceeds to the extremities of the pectoral fins; the greatest 
breadth being behind the middle of the disk. The ventral fins 
are rather narrow; the tail stout and tapering, with two dorsal 
fins close together near its termination. Eyes rather large, as 
are the spiracles close behind them. The skin is covered with 
granulations, which differ greatly from the spines or prickles 
which sometimes cover the skin of the Thornback Ray or Cuckoo 
Ray. Our example being a male is better armed with spines 
than the female may be supposed to be. A row encircles each 
eye; a lengthened bed of them is on the disk near the widest 
expansion of the pectoral fins; a line of spines more obscurely 
■VOL. I. S 


118 


SHAGREEN RAY. 


situated at the origin of the hack; and a double row of stout 
spines, with recurved points, runs from about the origin of the 
ventral fins along the tad to the dorsal fins; in the example 
described, to the second dorsal. These lines of spines are sepa- 
rate at first, and the surface rounded between them, but they 
become cloler as they proceed. In a female there was the 
absence of the bed of spines near the borders of the pectorals; 
hut there was a superior amount of roughness at those parts, 
and from the snout along the anterior border. In the Cuckoo 
Ray the skin is generally smooth, and the bed of spines behind 
the head triangular; the spines also being more sharp and 
slender than in the Shagreen Ray. The ornamental spots so 
conspicuous in the Cuckoo Ray are also absent. 

In a communication from the Rev. Walter Gregor, of Mac- 
duff on the INIoray Rirth, he informs me that he has only 
seen one example of the Shagreen Ray in that neighbourhood; 
which was caught with a line at the depth of thirty fathoms, in 
the month of February. The total length was two feet eight 
inches and a half, of which the tail was one foot five inches. 
The breadth was one foot two inches and a half. When on 
the beach it threw up its snout and tail almost perpendicularly, 
at the same time lifting also the pectoral fins. 



TORPEDO. 

XXX 


119 


TOEPEDO. 

The disk in shape approaches to the circular form, and is plump and 
soft; the anterior border, unlike other Eays, formed of two slight 
advances in front, with a small retraction between them. The caudal 
portion short and stout, ending in a fin which has a lobe below and 
above. The plump space between the head branchi® and pectoral 
fins is occupied by the electrical apparatus; the nature of which has 
rendered this genus of fishes famous. The surface is smooth; two 
dorsal fins. 


TORPEDO. 

CRAMP RAY. TURPAENA. NUMBFISH. P,LECTRIO RAY. 

Wherever this fish has been found it could not fail to 
attract attention, hy the experience it compelled its observers 
to obtain of the wonderful faculty which it possesses of affecting 
with numbness those who handle it — a circumstance which in 
ancient times must have appeared among the most unaccountable, 
as it still is among the most surprising occurrences of nature. 
We find accordingly that the Torpedo and its properties are 
mentioned by the earliest philosophers whose writings have 
been preserved; and from them, or popular knowledge, it 
obtained a name which shews that the nature of its influence 
had been not obscurely felt. It was from the first called Narke, 
and, says Oppian, — ■ 

“Is rightly named fi-om numbing pain;' 

and how generally this knowledge of its powers was spread 
abroad appears from a declaration of .®lian, B. 9, C. 14; who 
tells us that he received the account of its properties from his 
mother, whilst yet a child. 

In the year 1774, Sir John Pringle selected this as an 
appropriate subject for an oration on the occasion of delivering 
the Copley Medal to Mr. Walsh, in acknowledgment of that 


120 


TOKPEDO. 


gentleman’s experiments on the vital properties of this fish; and 
we shall he indebted to his narrative and explanation for a large 
portion of what we shall relate of its early history; but with 
a larger reference to several other authors who have treated 
upon it. The first writer mentioned by Pringle is Hippocrates, 
who, however, only notices it as an article of food; although, 
as has been justly remarked, by calling it by its significant 
name, it is shewn that he could not have been unacquainted 
with its reputation of possessing singular powers. Plato had a 
like general knowledge of its nature; as is proved by a com- 
parison he causes Menon to make, of his master Socrates to 
this fish. Aristotle, whose study of nature had drawn him further 
than any other into an acquaintance with the habits of living 
beings, and the services their properties secured to themselves, 
informs us of its habit of lying hid, and employing its peculiar 
powers for the purpose of benumbing such fishes as might 
wander near it, and thus satisfying the cravings of appetite. 
It is probable, from his well-known disposition to inquire into 
the natui-e of whatever of interest might fall in his way, that 
himself had examined this fish, although perhaps only after 
death; and he must have felt assured from his inquiries, that 
it truly possessed the properties ascribed to it; for he remarks 
as something worthy of notice, that so active a fish as the 
Mullet had been found in the stomach of so sluggish a creature 
as the Narke. But this eminent philosopher does not appear 
to have known, or perhaps fully credited, some of the particular 
facts reported of it; and it was his successor, Theophrastus, 
who ascertained that the fish was able, when touched by a 
rod or staff, to diffuse its influence to an object at some distance 
from itself. This we learn from Athemeus, who informs us 
also that Diphilius, of Laodicea, discovered the important fact, 
doubted by others, that the powers of the creature proceeded 
only from a limited portiou of its body; to which Hero of 
Alexandria added the observation that metals were capable of 
conveying the influence in the same manner as a rod or staff. 

Plutarch should be mentioned next to Hero, since, although 
probably he did not originally discover it, he is the first to 
mention the circumstance — that the numbing influence had been 
known to pass through a net to the arms of the fisherman; and he 
affirms, what is more fully mentioned by .Lilian and other writers 


TORPEDO, 


121 


that if a living fish be placed in a vessel of sea-water, a stream 
of that water poured on the hand or foot will convey the 
influence. 

Pliny, whose intention it was to bring into a small and 
convenient compass the whole of the current knowledge of his 
age, several times mentions the properties of this fish; which, 
as commander of tlie Roman fleet on the coast of Italy, he 
must have seen; but the chief part of what he has handed 
down to us is copied from other writers. He says, it is to be 
classed among the cartilaginous fishes, and in its habits shews 
a consciousness of its peculiar powers ; although these powers do 
not exert an influence on its own body. During the winter 
it lies hid in some depression at the bottom of the sea, and 
at other times conceals itself in a soft and muddy place, where 
it awaits the approach of any fish, which it strikes with the 
shock when it is off its guard, and then immediately darts upon 
and seizes it. In addition to what others have said of the 
numbing influence passing to a distance through a rod or staff, 
and of inflicting deadness on the most vigorous arm, he adds, 
that it is able to rivet to the ground the feet of any one, 
however otherwise active in the race. He goes on to state, that 
the female produces fourscore young ones at a birth, at the 
(we suppose autumnal) eq^uinox; and from the manner in which 
he speaks of the eggs, it would appear that he believed the 
young to be produced alive: a circumstance in which later 
observation shews him to have been mistaken. It remained 
for Oppian to embody the several observations made by others 
in his poem on fish and fishing; a work in which we can 
discover the observer of nature, even when the facts related 
are in great part founded on the authority of more ancient 
writers. I will remark, however, that he mentions a circum- 
stance that is overlooked or misapprehended by his poetical 
translator; but which is important as shewing his knowledge 
of the fact, that the torporific power was seated in a particular 
part of its body; — 

“The Oranipfish, when the (hook’s dread) pain alarms, 

Exerts his conscious skill and powerful arms, 

Applies his loins, and bids the line receive 
The numbing force it is his will to give. 

The flowing influence its volume rears. 

Bolls up the slender length of slippery hairs, 


m 


TORPEDO. 


Then down the rod with easy motion glides, 
And entering in the fisher’s hand subsides. 
On every joint an icy stiffness steals, 

The flowing spirits binds, and blood congeals. 
In vain he trios to grasp the sinking rod. 
And all his fishing-tackle strews the sod.” 

B 3, 


At a time when sea and land were ransacked for remedies 
to cure the various diseases that flesh is heir to, it would have 
been surprising if the wonderful powers of this fish had not 
been resorted to; but as a very large proportion of the medical 
practice of that age was in the hands of those who held them- 
selves out to the public as magicians, and, to use the language 
of the present day, were at least irregular practitioners of the 
art of medicine; with whom things the most strange and 
unaccountable in their eflects were thought the most highly of, 
there is some reason to suppose that the first attempts to turn 
this energy to use had their origin with them. On this subject 
we are indebted again to Pliny for most of the information 
we possess; for recording which, and many others of the pre- 
vailing beliefs that had currency among his people, he has been 
severely condemned, as if he gave credit to the whole. I am 
of opinion, however, that even a small amount of reflection will 
prove sufficient to relieve him from the general charge of credulity 
so commonly brought against him. 

At the time when the Roman empire was in its highest 
grandeur, the larger number of the physicians practising their 
profession in the city were foreigners, and chiefly from Egypt, 
a country which then continued to hold the highest reputation 
for the study of physic and the science of nature; but there 
does not appear to have existed there, and still less at Rome, 
any test by which the impudent pretender might be distin- 
guished from the scientific physician; and consequently the 
boldest assurance might well calculate on achieving the greatest 
success. A single cure effected on a man of eminence, however 
fortuitously obtained, was sufficient to bring a fortune to a 
physician; and the more wonderful the means employed, the 
greater was believed to be the skill of him who used them. 
The rational science of Galen or Celsus was less regarded 
than that laid claim to hy one who could employ the secrets of 
magic and astrology; and where no one was able to disprove 


TORPEDO. 


123 


them on grounds which ignorant men of power and wealth 
could understand, to have omitted the mention of such matters 
in a work intended to represent the full extent of knowledge 
then existing in the world, would have heen to render himself 
exposed to a reproach not less severe than, though the reverse 
of, that so often in modern times brought against him. 

But as regards many of the instances of a strange and now 
incredible kind to which Pliny has given a place in his work, 
and especially those concerning the Torpedo, he is careful to 
express or imply his doubts, although as a faithful copyist he 
feels himself bound to transcribe them. In addition then, to 
the information, that the local aj)plication of this fish was a 
remedy for some obscure disease of the spleen, we will only 
adduce one instance of the accepted practice of the magical 
physicians of that age, reported to us by this writer. It was 
important that this fish should be caught when the moon was 
in the celestial sign Libra, and that it should be kept in the 
open air for three days. If after this it were simply brought 
into the room where a woman was in a state of parturition, 
it would secure her speedy safety; and it would appear that it 
might thus be carried from one patient to another with equs 
success. 

The first physician of real abilities who directed his attention 
to the study of the medical properties of this fish was Galen; 
who prescribed the application of the living fish to cases of 
periodical headache with much success; and we learn also from 
Scribonius Largus, quoted by Matthiolus in his Commentary on 
Dioscorides, that a freedman of Augustus Csesar was relieved 
or cured of a fit of the gout by the same means. But it is 
not a little remarkable, and suggests some doubt of this sup- 
posed instance, that this case, which from the eminent station 
of the patient, must have been widely talked of, was not knovm 
to Pliny or Celsus; careful as the former has shewn himself to 
have been to collect all the information on every subject then 
attainable, and well acquainted, as he may be supposed also 
to have been, with all that was of interest connected with the 
court of Augustus. And how little the true nature of this 
remedial influence continued to be understood, appears from 
the writings of Paulus Aigineta, himself a physician of emi- 
nence; but who knew so little of the source of this powerful 


124 


TORPEDO. 


emanation, that he gives the prescription of an application, 
called Torpoena from a then common name of the fish, which 
was to be kept ready prepared for use. It was formed by 
boiling the flesh of the Torpedo in oil until its whole substance 
was dissolved and mingled with it. That even Galen supposed 
the existence of some of its properities after death is rendered 
probable by his remark, that when used as food it rendered 
the body dull and stupid. 

For more than a thousand years such was the extent of the 
knowledge of nature possessed even by those who were the 
most intimately acquainted with its phenomena; and it was only 
when the properties of electricity had become the subject of 
experiment, that any further light was thrown on the peculiai 
powers of this fish. The discovery in a distant land of a fish 
of a very diiferent species, but which was endued with similar 
faculties, had given a new impulse to inquiry; and it was then 
recollected that the powers of the Torpedo had never been 
closely studed. Redi, an Italian physician, was among the 
first to make remarks on the living fish, and Mr. Walsh the 
most successful of those who instituted expeiiments; and it is 
with a short account of these, accompanied with an abstract 
of the anatomical examinations of the illustrious John Hunter, 
as contained in the Lectures of Professor Richard Owen, that 
we shall close our history of these properties of the Torpedo. 

Redi says, that in order to satisfy himself of the certainty 
of the things reported about this fish, he repeated his observa 
tions on more than one example; but more particulary on a 
female of the weight of fifteen pounds, which had been caught 
for his use, and brought directly to him from the sea. As 
soon as he had grasped it with his hand, the hand and arm 
up to the shoulder began to suffer a creeping sensation, as if 
emmets were passing over it, accompanied with a trembling 
so irksome, and increasing to such sharp and tormenting pain 
at the point of the elbow, that he was compelled to remove 
his hand from the fish; and when he again attempted to grasp 
it the painful sensations returned. He remarked, however, that 
as the vital powers of the fish decreased, its power of inflicting 
pain and trembling also grew less. 

This fish continued alive for three hours, and on dissection 
its heart was found to beat for seven hours afterwards; but 


TORPEDO. 


125 


he remarked that after death no other sensation proceeded from 
it than might come from any other fish. Redi made the trial 
of placing his hand in the water in which the fish lay, but 
without feeling any inconvenience; as might he expected if the 
fish were not irritated. This author detected the existence of 
what we now know to be the electric organs; but he failed 
to understand their mode of operation, and supposed the columns 
to be of the nature of muscles. 

The operations of Mr. Walsh were conducted under more 
favourable circumstances, in consequence of the discoveries that 
had been lately made in the science of electricity. The 
substance of them was, that the fish possessed the power of 
accumulating in its electrical organs a considerable amount of 
that fluid, much in the same manner as it is accumulated in 
the instrument called the Leyden phial ; so that while one of its 
surfaces, the back, was in the positive condition, the belly was 
negative; and the equilibrium could be restored by the inter- 
position of water, metals, or the human body. Besides the degree 
of pain and numbness inflicted by this voluntary discharge on 
the part of the fish, under the influence of its will or passion, 
its violence can be judged by what is reported by Lacepede: 
that a duck was presently killed by being exposed to the shock. 
In Mr. Walsh’s experiment a Torpedo was laid on a table, 
where it rested on a wet napkin. Five persons, insulated, or 
separated from any connection with a conducting substance, 
stood round another table; and two brass wires, each thirteen 
feet long, were suspended by silk strings from the ceiling of 
the room. One of these wires rested by one of its ends on the 
wet napkin, and the other end was immersed in a basin of 
water placed on a second table; on which stood four other 
basins, also full of water. The first person placed a finger of 
one of his hands in the water in which the wire was immersed, 
and a finger of his other hand in the second basin; and so on 
successively until all the five persons were brought into com- 
munication with one another by means of the water in the 
basins. One end of the second wire was dipped into the last 
basin of water, and with the other end Mr. Walsh pressed the 
hack of the fish; at which instant the whole of the five persons 
were affected with the shock. Nothing could have been more 
decisive, even if the electric machine had been itself employed. 

VOL. I. T 


126 


TORPEDO. 


These electric organs are two-fold, and one of them is lodged 
on each side of the head and gills. They are formed of very 
numerous perpendicular pyramids, the ends of which are co\ ered 
by the integuments clothing the back and under part of the 
body. Each column appears like a mass of clear jelly, but on 
close examination it is seen to be formed of membranous plates, 
fastened at their margins to a case or capsule; and each one 
separated from the next by a small quantity of albuminous fluid. 
Each cell thus formed has its own separate lining, and the 
covering which encloses the whole forms the seat on which the 
blood-vessels and nerves, supplying this organ with their special 
fluids, are spread abroad, before they' enter to execute their 
specific functions. The blood conveyed thither is of the purest 
kind, and the nerves are such as are well fitted to convey a 
very large supply of their proper influence; the first four of 
them being as large as the spinal cord itself, from which all 
the other functions of animal life are bestowed on the body. 
As no other special function resides in the pectoral fins, and 
the general perceptions of the Torpedo are dull and inactive, 
it is to be concluded that these nerves supplying the electric 
organs are formed thus large, for the sole purpose of conveying 
the required energy from the nervous centre, where it is 
prepared, to the mass of cells; the proper function of which is 
to accumulate and retain it, until the instinctive feeling of the 
fish shall cause it to be discharged, either as a weapon of 
defence, or to supply its need, in the disabling and capture of 
its prey. 

The ancients possessed but little discrimination in detecting 
the smaller dilFerences which mark the distinction between 
nearly allied species of any kind of creatures; and they were 
further prevented from assigning to those difierences any 
important value from the general opinion of philosophers, that 
variations from a known type of form were to be ascribed to 
a kind of bastardy, arising from the indiscriminate conjunction 
of the sexes of kindred kinds. It is in modern times only 
that the last-named supposition has been judged unsound; and 
we owe it to naturalists of late date that we are able to assign 
what is known of the variations of the Torpedo, as it is found 
in the seas of Europe, to two separate species, with the pro- 
bability that there may also be a third. 


TORPEDO. 


127 


At first the attempt to apportion to those supposed species 
their true distinctive characters was built upon an attention to 
the remarkable spots, usually five in number, which are often 
placed in regular order on the surface of the disk; the absence 
or orderly arrangement of which was supposed to constitute 
the definite mark of a species. But it has been found by 
observation that in fishes in other respects closely resembling 
each other, these spots, as well as the general colour of the 
surface, are exceedingly liable to vary; and that in many cases, 
and especially in those found on our own coasts, they are usually 
found wanting; and it is furtlier said that they commonly do 
not occur in young examples. More extended inquiry may 
shew that when they occur these spots are more frequent in 
one species than another, or that when present their arrange- 
ment may be specific; but these particulars, so far as they are 
now known, are attended with so much uncertainty that, setting 
all others aside, I shall confine myself to a single one, which, 
in our present state of knowledge, appears the least liable to 
uncertainty; and according to which I form the following 
arrangement or references: — 

Cramp Bay, with a fringed border to the spiracles, the fringes 
described as from six to ten in number. 


Torpedo narhe, 

“ vulgaris. 

;• a 

<1 

it (> 


Si i 

ii 

(( (• 

llaie Torpille, 


Cuvier. 

JoKSTON; Tab. 9, f. 3, 5, 6. 

Willoughby; as described. 

Bloch; pi. 122. Donovan; pi. 63. 

Eisso; pi. 3, f. 4 and 6. T. marniorata 
and T. Galvani. Toi-pille vulgaire. 

Fleming; Br. An., p. 169. 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 509. 

Yaubell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 543. 

Lacepede ; who speaks of it as having 
sometimes a fringed border to the 
spiracle, as if this were liable to 
uncertainty. 


Cramp Bay with plain spiracles. 


Torpedo Oalvanii, Cuvier. Jonston ; Tab. 9, f. 4. 

“ “ Willoughby ; T. D. 4. The tail badly 

represented. 


128 


TORPKDO. 


Torpedo Galvanii, Risso; pi. 3, f. 3. Une tache. T. uni- 

maoulata. 

“ nohiliana, Yabeell; vol. ii, p. 546. Walsh’s ex- 

periments were made on this species. 


Although the figures of these fishes in books of Natural 
History are in g'^neral sufficiently characteristic, there have 
usually been defects, the cause of which may properly form a 
portion of their history. 

It is only for a short time after the fish has been taken from 
the water that the disk preserves its shape and dimensions. 
Soon after death a shrinking takes place on the upper surface; 
by which the plumpness of its appearance is diminished, and 
the borders become contracted; so that the lower surface 
gradually curls upward, and occupies the margin to the extent of 
several inches. But if it happen that the body has been placed 
in a position by which its parts have sustained a strain, the 
proportions become stretched into an unnatural shape, much 
unlike that which it bore when alive. Risso’s figures appear 
to have been drawn from examples which had been thus dealt 
with; and although boasted of by him, are by far the worst 
anywhere to be found. The particular changes thus referred 
to are noticed by Mr. Dillwyn, in his “Fauna of Swansea:” 
— “When alive the length was found to be forty-one inches 
and a half, the greatest breadth twenty-nine inches and a half; 
the breadth of the caudal fin at its extremity nine inches, and 
the weight above forty-four or forty-five pounds. On the 
following day it measured forty-two inches by thirty, and it 
then weighed forty-three pounds and a half. In stuffing the 
specimen the length, to my surprise, has considerably increased, 
though the other dimensions remained nearly unchanged, and 
now the extreme length is forty-nine inches; the upper lobe 
twenty-four inches, the lower lobe ten inches and a half, the 
tail eight inches and a half, and the caudal fin six inches long. 
The breadth or greatest diameter of the upper lobe is thirty 
inches, and of the lower lobe fifteen inches, and the caudal fin 
has contracted at its extremity to be only eight inches broad.” 

Our description is from an example taken in a trawl a little 
on the outside of the Breakwater in Plymouth Sound. The 
length two feet six inches; form of the disk nearly chxular; 


TORPEDO. 


129 


tile front almost straight, except that it slightly recedes at the 
place where the snout is usually found slightly projecting in 
the family of Uays; and a small projection is to be discerned 
at the border opposite each eye. The thickness and plumpness 
of the body extend to near the cii-cumference. The eyes small, 
and embedded in the surface, so that the sight appears directed 
ujnvard; but they do not strictly answer to each other. Spi- 
racles oval, simple, a corner directed obliquely forward. The 
right ventral fin passing a little further back than the left; 
side of the caudal portion having a ridge. The first dorsal fin 
at the part where the caudal portion joins the disk, at the end 
of the ventrals ; second dorsal a little behind the first, and 
smaller. Tail with a lobe below and above, the edge of the 
lower portion passing a little further forward than the upper. 
The mouth small, arched, the teeth sharp, and moveable, from 
the loose condition of the membrane on which they are placed; 
the jaw-bone slight and feeble. Nostrils nearer the sides of the 
mouth than in the Rays generally; connected to each other by 
a loose fimbriated curtain, which has a deeper notch in the 
middle Colour dark brown, with a tinge of blackish purple; 
a lighter brown margin round the eyes. It was a female. 

Examples of this fish have been obtained in different parts 
of England and Ireland; and we may suppose it is only because 
fishermen do not often resort to the slimy and unproductive 
places it frequents, that it is not much more frequently caught. 
Five were noticed in one year in the Mount’s Bay, in Corn- 
wall; two or three came under the observation of William B. 
Cocks, Esq., of Falmouth; and an example was obtained at 
Weymouth, by William Thompson, Esq. A specimen has been 
seen that weighed a hundred pounds; but it is to be remarked 
that the spots which were so conspicuous in these fishes in the 
Mediterranean, have not been noticed with us. A snout, how- 
ever, was discernible in one or two, at least, which were obtained 
in the Mount’s Bay. 



Torpedo’s Teeth, enlarged size. 


130 


TETGON. 

The head enclosed on the sides by the pectoral fins; the body ele- 
vated; tail slender, without a fin, armed with a long spine, which is 
serrated on the edges. 


STING RAY. 

FIRE FLATRE. TRYGON. 


Pastinaea marina, 

it it 

Baia Tadtinaca, 

it it 

Baie Fastenarfuet 
Trygon Fastinacea^ 

« it 

n 


JONSTON ; p. 32. 

W 11 .LOUGHBT; p. 67, pi. 0. 3. 

Linr.eus. Donovan; pi. 99. 

Bloch, pi. 82. Jenyns; Manual, p. 51 S. 
Lacepede. Eisso; p. 10. 

Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 170, Ouvibb. 
Yakbell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 588. 
Gray; Catalogue Br. Museum, p. 118. 


The ancients were well acquainted with this fish, and had 
an extravagant dread of what they supposed the poisonous 
effects of a wound inflicted by the dart on its tail. There is 
no doubt that this may be the cause of considerable injury 
when dashed about in all directions, by the vibration of the 
tail of an angry fish; and it is not improbable that a formi- 
dable inflammation would follow; and even that an attack of 
tetanus or lock-jaw has been produced in a constitution of body 
already prepared for such consequences. Such a superstition is 
countenanced by what Matthiolus says, in his “Commentaries 
on Dioscorides,” of instances where death from the wound has 
been attended with convulsions and contractions of the whole 
body. He also quotes uEtius as saying that such wounds are 
soon followed with severe pains and deadness, which spread 
Qvei the whole body. It is, therefore, with some truth that 




STING RAY. 

XXXI 



STING RAA’. 


131 


Pliny remarks how much the poisonous effects of such an 
injury are to he dreaded. 

But the ancients had not learned to distinguish between those 
effects of an injury, which for the most arise from diseased 
influences existing in the person who suffered, and those pro- 
duced by a poison inserted into a wound from the instrument 
inflicting it. The bite of the adder is of the latter kind; but 
observation has not confirmed the opinion formerly so Avidely 
spread, of the poison communicated by the dart of the Sting 
Ray; the injury from which is more properly ascribed to the 
jagged nature of the Avounds scattered over a broad surface of 
the skin. The firmness of the structure of this dart forms also 
a material portion of its powers; for the numerous points along 
its sides are in a reversed direction; so that when it has pene- 
trated the flesh it cannot be withdrawn Avithout the enlargement 
of the wound. 

A narratiA'e given by .®lian will shew some of its formidable 
effects from this cause, and also afford another explanation of 
the greater terror felt concerning it, where the people were 
generally ignorant of natural phenomena. A man had con- 
trived to filch away from the net of a fisherman a Sting Ray, 
which he had mistaken for a Turbot; and which he hastened 
to sell in the market. It was concealed under his clothes; 
and feeling some uneasiness in the part of his body where the 
fish lay, he pressed it so much the closer. The story appears 
to sheAV that in his haste he fell to the ground, by which 
accident the dart was driven into his body; for he was found 
dead, with the dart piercing to his boAvels, which protruded 
through the wound; and by this circumstance, in the opinion 
of the people, the fatal nature of this instrument became still 
more positively confirmed. 

We need not feel surprised at finding poetry and romance 
uniting their powers to spread abroad the opinions and feelings 
thus existing in the public mind; and accordingly the brief 
notices recorded by Pliny are thus expanded in the poetry of 
Oppian; in his account of which he unites the Sword Pish 
with the Sting Ray: — 


The Fireflair’s tail its venom’d shaft contains;— 
Nor time, nor waste the poisonous treasure drains. 


132 


STING RAY. 


Murderous alike tkey ravage all the sea, 

First give the mortal wound, then seize the prey. 

In this they differ ; when the Sword Fish dies. 

Extinct with him the mouldering weapon lies. 

Not so the Fireflair’s dart; that still survives 
The dying fish, and in its venom lives. 

None equal that the Eay-hke Fireflair bears; 

No dreaded stroke, no killing wound like hers. 

All things must yield; the dire iiffection’s such. 

The solid fliut would moulder at the touch. 

When rising shrubs their spreading branches shoot, 

Pride in their leaves, or joy in ripening fruit. 

If with the Fireflair’ a spear the hand unkind 
But grate the root, or prick the tender rind. 

The leaves shrink in and all the glories fade, 

Eioh sap no more is through the pipes convey’d; 

No kind supplies flow round the porous stem. 

Cast a bright green and swell the smiling gem, 

But killing juices all the fibres taint. 

And tarnish’d verdure tells the fatal want. 

JElian says that such a wound was beyond the reach of 
remedy; but we find it prescribed for, and even with remedies 
that could have possessed but little of the powers of healing. 
And with all the fear which existed concerning it, it appears 
surprising that there were people bold enough to employ it 
for the purpose of enabling children to cut their teeth the more 
easily. When reduced to powder it was believed also to have 
the power of relieving the tooth-ache, and of finally causing 
decaying teeth to drop from their sockets. Nor, with some 
explanation, is this last prescription so entirely useless as at 
first sight might appear. The powder was mixed with that of 
white hellebore; and if medical writers of no mean credit are 
to be believed, this vegetable preparation is really possessed 
of the virtues ascribed to this composition; and it was a popular 
empiric application in the middle ages. 

The Sting Eay is not a common fish in England; but it is 
scarce rather than rare ; and mostly perhaps because the swampy 
places it frequents are not usually resorted to by fishermen; 
besides which it does not often take a bait. It has been 
supposed that the dart is of some use in obtaining its food, 
which appears to be small fish. By some, especially in remote 
times, this fish has been commended for the table; but Risso 
speaks unfavourably of it. 

The length of the specimen described was thirty-one inches and 
a half, the tail measuring sixteen inches; the greatest breadth 


STING KAY. 


133 


nineteen inches j the snout short, thin, and a little turned up; 
from it to the eye three inches and a half; the eye rather 
small, and prominent; spiracles large, and passing forward under 
the eye. At about the middle of the body it is much raised, 
and from that part it slopes both forwards and behind; the 
widest part at about six inches and a half from the snout, and 
consequently before the middle; ventral fins nearly square pos- 
teriorly. The tail thick and round from its origin to the place 
of the spine, and from thence slender. Root of the spine five 
inches and a half from the origin of the tail; the spine five 
inches long, lying lengthwise; moderately sharp, grooved in 
several lines, with a keel below, armed along each side with 
a close-placed row of reversed points. A deep depression 
along the middle of the back of the tail from its origin up- 
wards— there obsolete; two others on each side of the root of 
the spine, passing up to the cross bones not far behind the 
eyes; which lines, although fainter than the middle line below, 
are more strongly marked above. The skin smooth; mouth and 
teeth small. In one example the general colour was a dark 
red, in another dusky yellow. 

It is a wise provision in the oeconomy of nature, that when 
the dart has become blunted or otherwise useless, provision is 
made for its being restored, by a loosening of its root of 
attachment, when it drops off, and is replaced by a new one. 
Whether this is done periodically, or at irregular intervals, is 
not known; but it sometimes happens that the newly-formed 
spear is well advanced in growth before its predecessor is 
thrown off, and an instance of this sort enables us to remark 
that both had their origin from the same root or gland. The 
older spear was the longer, being seven inches long^ in a fish 
the extreme length of which was three feet, hanging rather 
loosely; while the new, which protruded under the other, 
closely adhered for half an inch, and was of softer consistence 
near its root. Professor Owen refers to Agassiz, as pointing 
out the close resemblance of the microscopic structure of the 
bone of this spine or dart, and the dentine of the teeth of 
the same fishes; they are both hardened by an outer layer of 
modified dentine, but as hard as enamel. 

Mr. Dillwyn (Fauna of Swansea,) mentions an instance of 
the occurrence of two spines in a Sting Ray caught near 

VOL. 1. U 


134 


STING KAY. 


Swansea; and supposed it, therefore, to constitute the It. 
altavela of Linnaeus. But it is probable that he quoted from 
memory; and the much rarer R. altavela is distinguished by 
not having a fin on the tail. It has never been found in 
England. 



Sting Kay, shewing the raised pait of the hody. 




XXXII 



135 


MmOBATIS. 

The head projecting beyond the attachment of the pectoral fins; the 
latter spreading wider than in other kinds of Rays. Jaws with broad 
flat teeth. Tail long and slender, bearing a single dorsal fin, and armed 
with a spine. 


EAGLE RAY. 


TOAD-FISH. SEA EAGLE, 


It was called the Eagle in ancient times, because of its widely-spread 
pectoral fins resembling wings, and its great magnitude when of full 
size; its weight being supposed to amount to several hundred pounds. 
It was also named Toad-fish, from the appearance of its head, which 
slopes considerably, and its protuberant eyes on the sides of the head; 
conveying, therefore, the impression of the aspect of tlmt reptile. 


Myliobatis aqiiila, 

a « 

(( it 

(( <( 


« (( 
Baia aquila, 
Bale aigle, 


JoNSTO.v; p. 30, tab. 9, f. 9. 
Willoughby ; p. 64, tab. c. 2. 

Lowe; Fishes of Madeira, tab. 15. 
Jesyns; Manual, p. 519. 

Yakeell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 691. 
Cuvieb. 

Linnjsus. 

Lacepedb and Rtsso. 


It has been the general opinion of naturalists that this fish 
produces its young alive ; but in the year 1845, Charles William 
Peach, Esq., then living at Eowey, in Cornwall, obtained from 
the master of a trawl vessel belonging to that port, a large and 
very curious purse that had been dredged up in his trawl, 
and presented it with its contents to me, and from which was 
extracted an undoubted example of the partially developed young 
of the Eagle Eay. This purse is described below, and the 
embryo within it appeared to be about half developed, with 


136 


EAGLE RAY. 


the ovum attached to its body; and threads or fibres projecting 
from the orifices of the gills; such as are known to exist m 
the Sharks and Kays, and indeed also in toads, frogs, and 
water-lizards, in the early stages of their existence; but which 
in the former disappear when their functions are no longer 
needed, considerably before they arc *rust upon an indepen- 
dent existence. The spine on the tail had not yet made its 
appearance. I have received by the kindness of a gentleman 
in Dorsetshire, another purse of the same sort,^ obtained on the 
coast of that county; a further proof that this fish is not so 
rare a visitor as has been supposed. 

Besides the above proof that this fish produces its young by 
means of purses instead of producing them alive, the circum- 
stances here related also shew that it is not merely a rare visitor 
to our neighbourhood; and of this also the following incident 
furnishes evidence; for that it refers to this species I feel no 
manner of doubt:— A fisherman, long and well acc^uainted with 
the fishes of the British seas, and especiaUy with all our common 
sorts of the family of Rays, informed me that in the month of 
July, whilst at sea, his attention was attracted to a fish which 
was swimming close to the surface, when the sea was smooth 
and the weather fine. Its general appearance was that of the 
Ray kind, but with a particular aspect, which on closer 
inquiry clearly answered to that of the Eagle Ray ; the eyes 
especially attracting his notice, as at the side of the head, and 
resembling those of an ox. When he approached it for 
examination, the boat passed over it, and in doing so inflicted 
a violent blow, which caused the fish to turn almost over in the 
water; but it presently set itself right again, and moved heavily 
onward. He laid hold of it with the boat-hook; but the weight, 
which, on comparison with the Skates, he judged to be not 
less than three hundred pounds, was too great for him, and 
he was obliged to resign the task, and he finally lost sight of 
it; but not by the sinking of the fish, for it continued near 
the surface until the boat had passed to leeward out of sight. 

The incident here related shews the fish to be of dull and 
sluggish habits; but that it is not so great a stranger as has 
been supposed even on the north of British coasts, appears 
from the fact, that an example was obtained by Dr. George 
Johnston, in the neighbourhood of Berwick. 


EAGLE RAY 


137 


1 prefer to take our description, but in an abbreviated 
form, from Mr. Lowe’s unfinished work, the '‘Fishes of 
Madeira,” rather than from an imperfect specimen obtained in 
England; and the rather that the former was derived from an 
example fresh from the sea, and not from one preserved in a 
museum. 

The pectoral fins are widely spread, and growing narrow at 
their greatest extent; the back raised, and so sloping to the 
snout, and also towards the tail; which organ is long, slender, 
and ending in a fine point, with a fin near its origin, and a 
dart or spine having reversed serrated teeth at the sides, not 
far behind the fin. The eyes are large and prominent, on the 
sides of the head, under a projection of the bone, and close 
behind them wide spiracles. The posterior border of the pec- 
toral fins incurved and waved; ventrals small, and the claspers 
of the males so small as to be nearly concealed by these fins. 
Mouth below, level with the origin of the pectoral fins; the 
jaws with flat grinding teeth in the middle, but none at the 
comas of the mouth. The general surface is smooth, but 
there is often a roughness from the head along the back, and 
spreading a little over the base of the wings. The length of 
the tail is about twice the length of the body, and rather 
exceeding in its extent the whole breadth across the pectoral fins. 
The colour is greenish or olive liver brown; the tail dark 
brown, beneath white. When first taken this fish flourishes its 
tail in all directions; and although the tall is proportionally less 
than in the Sting Eay, it is capable of inflicting formidable 
injury. The length of the purse is six inches and a half; the 
breadth four inches and five eighths; length of the longest 
tendrils about seven inches and a half, flat and thin in shape, 
and ending in a slender cord. The structure of the surface 
is curious and beautiful, difiFering much from that of other 
known Rays; the surface thickly set with raised longitudinal 
lines, closely crossed with dots or raised lines; each longitudinal 
line being thickly studded with raised markings, points, or 
short lines; which, however, do not pass from one line to another, 
although they appear to sink into the minute channel between 
them. ° This description, however, only applies to the middle 
of the case; for towards the ends and sides the longitudinal 
lines are joined in this manner, and the reticulations form 
VOL. 1. ^ 


13S 


eagle KAY. 


beautiful squares, which grow finer towards the border, and 
disappear at the margin. Colour approaching to black. 

Our figure is copied from the work of Mr. Lowe, above 
referred to. 



1.— Eagle Ray. 


2.— Embryo of the Eagle Ray, taken near Fowey. 








IIIXXX 



139 


PTEROCEPHALA. 

The fore part of the head as if cut short, aud the pectoral Hus, 
instead of clasping it, have each of their anterior extremities extendi'd 
forward, appearing as if the fish was furnished with horns. The tail 
slender; the spine, dorsal fin, and pectoral fins broad. 


OX KAY. 


Cephaltii'lera Giorna, 

“ Massena, 
Baia Fabroniana, 
Hoi-ned Bay, 


« 


(( 


OuviEiil Jesyns; Manual, p. olP? 

Risso; Vacca? 

Lacepede. 

Yakuei.l; Br. Pishes, vol. ii, p. 596? the 
figure we must suppose, unlike anything 
in nature. 

PaoEESsoit F. M'Cov; Amials and Mag. 
of Natui’al History, vol. si-v, for March, 
1847. 


Tiii-s remarkable form of the family of Skates and Rays 
attracted the forcible attention of the ancients, as well from 
the enormous size they have sometimes attained, (even to twelve 
hundredweight or more,) as from the singular form of the 
front of the head, which, from its resemblance to a pair of 
projecting horns, gave occasion to their being characterized by 
the name of Bos, or the Ox. In the present day on the coast 
of Italy, according to Risso, they are known by the name 
of Vacca, or the Cow. A large example, which, whether 
specifically different from the smaller individuals that have 
come to our coasts is uncertain, was the terror of the divers 
for sponges and coral; for whom it was supposed to be ever 
on the watch with devouring propensities, and whose return 
from the bottom it endeavoured to intercept by assuming a 
station at mid-water above them, where it so molested their 
endeavour to ascend, as to cause their destruction; of which 


140 


ox KAY. 


proceeding the following verses of Oppian contain the popular 
belief, referred to also by Pliny, B. 9, C. 70: — 

Bnwrapt in softer sUme the Sea Cow dwells, 

Who every sea-bred kind in breadth excels. 

To twice six cubits stretched, their flatted sides 
Press down the lab’ring waves and smooth the tides. 
Unarmed their body, though with monstrous size 
And bulky form they strike the wond’ring eyes. 

Borne on the struggling floods that broad-backed Ray 
Unwieldly lolls, and takes up all the way. 

Few are their teeth, unfit for martial toil. 

Thin set, not made to sieze the doubtful spoil. 

But schemes well laid they resolute pursue, 

And by superior fraud ev’n man subdue. 

They mark when daring mortals plunge below. 

Where pearls are hid and coral branches grow; 

Then hover o’er the place and float at ease. 

Stretch on the waves and shade the covered seas; 

With patient hope unmov’d their station keep. 

Till from the secret chambers of the deep 
Laden with spoils the diver mounts again. 

Nor can the surface reach with all his pain. 

By wonted arts he tries himself to raise, 

But o’er his head th’ unwelcome pressure stays. 

Kept back from looked-for day, the mortal grieves. 

In vain the pressing lid his shoulder heaves; 

His weaker thrust the stubborn weight withstands, 

And backward sinks him down to lowest sands. 

If he swims forward, and the surface leaves. 

The subtle fish the vain attempt perceives. 

Still hangs aloof, and o’er his pensive head 
The shades unwish’d their gloomy coverts spread. 

Till wearied arms their toilsome work refuse. 

But faintly strike, and catch the yielding ooze. 

Such is the toil when venturous divers meet 
The floating roof, and push the pressing weight. 

Stretched on the watery plain unmoved it lies. 

And open air and lightsome day denies. 

Till swallow’d waves an easy passage find. 

And in its latest breath life mingles with the wind. 

Thus, proud of her success, the spreading Ray 
By stratagem obtains the noblest prey. 

B. 2. 

Into what species this family of fishes may be divided 
appears even now to be uncertain, and British naturalists not 
only differ from each other, but from themselves, in those 
descriptions and accounts which seem necessary to enable us 
to form definite opinions on the subject. Of the few examples 
which have been taken in the British seas there is little cer- 
tainty, since they have not generally come into the hands of 
competent observers; and some of the engraved figures appear 


ox RAY. 


141 


to have been derived from badly-preserved, and even mutilated 
subjects. It appears highly probable, however, that more than 
one species has visited usj and, in collecting together what 
has been recorded concerning them, I would be considered 
as furnishing the reader with a summary of what is known, 
for future use, rather than as satisfying inquiry or advancing 
a decided opinion. I have not myself been able to examine 
and sketch more than a single example, and that a preserved 
skin, of these fishes, and this I believe to have been obtained 
from the Mediterranean; but, although with some difference, 
it bore so close a likeness to the example described and 
represented by Professor M’ Coy, in the “Annals and Maga- 
zine of Natural History,” already referred to, that I feel no 
hesitation in believing them to represent each other. Professor 
M’ Coy’s description is therefore here brought forward at 
considerable length, and his figure is chiefly depended on, 
although another is also produced, from the example already 
mentioned as sketched from nature by myself. 

“The specimen in question was first publicly noticed by 
Mr. Thompson, in a communication to the Zoological Society 
of London, and the particulars which he gives of its capture 
on the Irish coast are all I know on that point. That 
gentleman, however, neither described nor figured the specimen, 
merely noticing its general resemblance to the figure given 
by Risso of the Cephaloptera Giorna; subsequent writers seem 
to have in some measure mistaken this passage, as they make 
the reference to that species decisive, which, as I have stated, 
was not the case in the original notice. I might here suggest, 
that, according to the rule of priority, DumeriPs name 
(Cephaloptera ) should not be retained for this genus, having 
been previously used by Geofi'ioy St. Hilaire for a genus of 
Coracince, formed for the reception of that remarkable bird 
the Coracina cephaloptera of Vieillot. It has been proposed 
to alter the name of the genus of fish to Pterocephala, which 
it would be well to adept. 

“On examining this very interesting specimen, I found that 
although obviously a Pterocephala, it yet presented most im- 
portant differences from the C. Giorna, both in outline, pro- 
portions, shape of the fins, and form of the wing-like appendages 
to the head; neither does it agree with any of the European 


142 


ox RAY. 


or American species described by modern writers, so far as I 
have seen, but seems referable to that described many years 
ago, from the coast of Tuscany, by Dr. Fabroni, of Florence, 
and figured by Lacepede under the name of Rata Fahroniana, 
in honour of its discoverer. This species seems to have been 
lost, Cuvier and most other icthyologists throwing a doubt on 
its existence, and supposing the figure referred to to represent 
a mutilated example of the common C. Giorna; it is therefore 
doubly interesting to re-discover it in our own seas, as an 
addition to the fauna, and as re-placing an old species in the 
systems. The P. Fahroniana differs from the P. Giorna in the 
length of the body (exclusive of the whip -like tail) being 
nearly one half of the width from tip to tip of the pectoral 
fins, while the length is not more than one third of the width 
in the latter species. Besides this great proportional width of 
P. Giorna, its pectorals are much narrower than in the present 
fish, and nearly straight; while in the P. Fahroniana they 
are broadly falcate, recurved, and without any fan-like margin 
on the anterior edge. The appendage to the head forms a 
semicylindrical process in the P. Giorna, but forms two horn- 
like fins, one on each side of the head, in the Irish fish and 
in Fabroni’s Mediterranean one. Those are represented in the 
figure sent to Lacepede, and engraved in his work, with, I 
think, rather too many turns, being twisted into regular conical 
horns; the corresponding parts in the specimen under con- 
sideration shew also a strong tendency to roll spirally, but 
not amounting to more than I have represented in the sketch; 
this is, however, a matter easily exaggerated by an artist, or 
the difference of age or sex would very probably make a 
difference in the length and consequent enrolment of those 
parts. 

“Dr. Fabroni’s species is defined as a falciformly dilated 
brown Kay, whitish beneath, etc. This colouring agrees 
exactly with our specimen, but dififers entirely from that of P. 
Giorna. Another point of agreement between the tw'o former 
specimens is the extreme slenderness of the tail, it not being 
more than half the thickness of that of P. Giorna; the tail 
in both specimens of the P. Fahroniana is defective as to all 
that portion from the barbed spine to the tip, so that the 
exact position or form of the spine is unknown. The figure 


ox RAY. 


143 


given by Lacepede is of the under side only ; it agrees, 
however, very well in the general form and proportions, broad, 
recurved pectoral fins, frontal processes, and the small size of 
the tail. There is a very strong resemblance also between 
the present fish and the Indian C. Kuhlii, as figured by. 
Muller and Henl(5, particularly in the form of the lateral 
processes of the head, and the general proportions of the 
body; but our specimen and Dr. Tabroni’s seem to differ 
from that species in the small size of the head, and some 
minor points, in addition to the difference of habitat. 

“Length of the Irish specimen from the front to the dorsal 
fin one foot eight inches; eutii'e width three feet eight inches 
and a half; height of the dorsal fin two inches and a half, 
length the same; from one eye to the other eight inches.” 

Lor the sahe of brevity I will tahe from the accounts of 
Lacepede and Lisso only so much as may serve to afford a 
proper understanding of the nature and uses of the remarkable 
processes which have been compared to horns, and which 
form the principal portion of the character of this tribe of 
fishes, the employment of which appears to constitute a highly 
curious portion of their history. In the example described 
by Lacepede those processes were slender, moveable, and 
upwards of eighteen inches in length, thus measuring about a 
fourth part of the whole length of the body of the fish. 
They are formed of ribs of cartilage bound together with a 
membranous substance, so moulded as to be capable of being 
spread out like a fan, a structure which serves as well to 
enable the fish to feel its way, as to convey food to its mouth. 
Risso describes these processes in the recent fish as being 
whitish on the inside, tinted with blue on the outside, and 
very black at the extremity. It appears to have the power 
to unroll these processes at will, and to direct them towaids 
any object it wishes to approach. Its mouth is large, and the 
jaws are furnished with several rows of blunt teeth. There 
were two long appendages (apparently claspers) attached to 
the ventral fins; tail long, tapering, with three rows of rough 
elevations. The length of the example was between thirteen 
and fourteen feet. 

In the month of September, 1807, a female of this species, 
which weighed twelve hundred pounds, was caught in a stake- 


144 


ox KAY. 


net (mandrague) at Nice, and for two days afterwards the 
male did not cease to wander about the place, until he also 
fell into the same snare. Their usual haunts are supposed 
to be at a great depth, from which they are only driven by 
stormy weather. 






' 'VV 

’• ■I?:!: 

■ 





145 


CHIMiEEA. 

The gill openings on eacli side outwardly single; upper lip divided 
into two portions' the fore teeth cutting, two only, above and below. 


ARCTIC CHIMA5RA. 

KABBIT FISH. SEA APE. KING OF THE HEB.RINGS. 


Sinnia W/arvna, Gesner; !N*onienclator Aquatiliuin. p, 153, 

copied by Jonston, pi. 7, fig. 6. 

Galeus acanthias Ghisii exoUcws, WiLLOUGiiny; p. 67, tab. b. 9, copied 

apparently from Clusius, whose figure 
was from a badly-dried skin 

OhimcBra monstrosa, Linnaeus. 

Chitn&re Avctigu&t Ijacbpede and Eisso , the Oaf, ol the 

latter also. 


Among the aberrant forms which lie upon the outskirts of 
the families of Sharks and Skates without bearing a very 
close resemblance to either, is the Linnsean genus Ckimwra, 
which, although consisting of no more than two recognised 
species, has been separated into two distinct genera; and that 
one which particularly comes under our notice is among the 
most remarkable of fishes, whether we consider its shape and 
habits, or the coldness of the climate in which it finds its 
safety and delight. The far greater number of the species in 
the families above named, are inhabitants of the warm or 
temperate regions of the ocean; but the Chimsera and its 
kindred species the CaUorhynchus, frequent the coldest por- 
tions of the globe; but what is still more extraordinary, 
these closely-allied fishes are known only in regions wide as 
the poles asunder. 

It is the Chimsera, or to call it by its humbler and more 


146 


ARCTIC CHIMjERA. 


familiar name, the Rabbit Fish, that is chiefly known within 
the icy waters of our northern circle of the world, and from 
which it seldom wanders; so that its occurrence in the most 
distant, in that direction, of the British Islands, is rare and 
accidental; and consequently its scientific observers have been 
few. Indeed, within its native seas it is said to come near 
the surface only in the dark hours of the night, and therefore 
it can only be by rare good fortune that its living manners 
shall fall under the inspection of any one. For these reasons 
we find ourselves compelled to lie under an obligation to two 
or three of the students of nature for what we have to say 
of this curious fish, as regards cither its form or habits; and 
of these we shall assign the preference to the French naturalist 
Lacepede, which we do principally from the consideration 
that he appears more than others to have observed and studied 
it in its living condition. We have figures which probably 
are correct on the whole in the works of Bloch and Dono- 
van; but the colours are perhaps a little exaggerated, for 
Gesner informs us that the drawing he had received from a 
friend, and which formed the first announcement of this fish 
to the world, was simply of a greenish tint. The figure by 
Lacepede, which I copy, appears to answer more closely to 
his description than either of the others above mentioned, and 
it also more emphatically bears out the fanciful similitude of 
the fabulous Chimsera of the ancient Greeks, from which 
Linnseus derived its scientific name. 

According to the French author above referred to, the 
activity, in connection with the grotesqueness of the movements 
of this fish, the flexibility of its very long and slender tad, its 
manner of uncovering its teeth, and continually twisting about 
the different portions of its flexible muzzle, forcibly call up 
in the spectator’s mind the grinning and absurd actions of the 
monkey; while the singular form of its body, its long tail, 
(much like that of a snake,) joined to a massy head which 
resembles that of a lion, with the long first rays of its dorsal 
fin representing in some sort the mane of that beast; to which 
we add in the male a small elevated horn on the fore part 
of the head, that is crested with a tuft of slender threads, 
which may be supposed to represent the crown of the king of 
beasts. The lineaments of the other parts of the body at 


AKCTIC CHIMERA. 


147 


first view appear unnatural, and bear little likeness to any- 
thing found in the generality of fishes. 

In its body, although not more than three feet long, it has 
much resemblance to a Shark. It is compressed in a slight 
degree at the sides, and lengthened, and rapidly diminishes 
from the pectoral fins to the end of the tail. The skin is 
pliant, smooth, and covered with scales so small as not to be 
sensible to the touch, but they are so bright and silvery as 
to cause the whole surface to shine. In some cases there are 
brown patches scattered over this surface, by which the 
brightness is rendered more conspicuous. The large head is 
of a pyramidal shape, ending in a point at the muzzle, the 
top of which is about the same height as the eyes, which are 
large; and near them is the lateral line, which is white, 
sometimes edged with brown, and on each side reaching to 
the middle of the tail, where it descends below the lower 
portion of the body, to be joined with the corresponding line 
on the other side. Near the head the lateral line divides into 
several waved branches, one of which passes over the back to 
meet a branch of the line from the other side. Two other 
branches pass round the eye and meet at the snout. A fourth 
proceeds to the corner of the mouth, and a fifth passes in a 
crooked direction under the last-named along the lower surface 
of the snout, and becomes mixed with its fellow on the other- 
side. The surface of the body is soft and flexible, folded on 
the lower portion, and furnished with numerous openings for 
the supply of mucus. 

The pectoral fins are large, falciform, having at their root 
a fleshy base. The dorsal fin rises by a long, firm, three- 
cornered spine, which is notched along its hinder edge. This 
fin becomes suddenly lower and then again wide, to the space 
opposite the vent. There is a very small space between it 
and the second dorsal, the rays of which are about the same 
length as those which end the first, but which become lower 
gradually to the tail, where they end. In some instances, 
however, this interval between the fins does not exist, so that 
some naturalists reckon three fins in the space along the back 
’^b02*0 others mention only one. line tail ends m a long and 
very slender filament. The anal fins are two, of which the 
first is very short and slightly falciform, beginning below the 


148 


ARCTIC CHIMJERA. 


place where the lateral lines of each side join each other. 
The second is very narrow and short. The ventral fins enclose 
the orifice of the vent, and, like the pectorals, are united to 
a fleshy base. Its month is small, and each jaw is supplied 
with two long plates with cutting edges, having furrows that 
cause them to resemble distinct incisor teeth. In the palate 
also are two flat and triangular teeth. Besides the crest which 
stands in front of the head, near the snout of the male fish, 
there are before the ventral fins two organs, which are in 
some degree like small feet, and have nails, but their use 
is the same as that of the claspers in the Sharks and Skates. 
It is only at the time of depositing its eggs that this fish 
comes into shallow water, and it is then seen only at night, 
for the brightness of sunshine appears to dazzle its eyes. Its 
ordinary food is crabs and shell-fish, but it also feeds eagerly 
on herrings, and probably also on other fish. 

We add a short description from Dr. Fleming, as referred 
to at the beginning of this article, of an example sent to him 
from the Orkney Islands; the more especially as it shews some 
difierence from that of Lacepede: — The length nearly three 
feet; body compressed. Head blunt; the snout sub-ascending 
and blunt. A narrow crenulated grinder on each side in the 
lower jaw, and a broad tubercular one corresponding above. 
Nostrils immediately above the upper lip, contiguous, each 
with a cartilaginous complicated valve. Branchial openings in 
front of the pectorals, (and it appears from some observers 
that the marks of the five internal channels are visible on the 
surface, although the outlets of the gills is single on each 
side.) Eyes large, lateral. The lateral line connected with 
numerous waved anastomosing grooves on the cheeks and face 
On the crown in front of the eyes a thin osseous plate, bent 
forwards, with a spinous disk at the extremity on the lower 
side. The first dorsal fin above the pectorals, narrow, with a 
strong spine along the anteal edge. The second dorsal arises 
immediately behind the first, is narrow, and is continued to 
the caudal one, where it terminates suddenly. The pectorals 
are large and sub-triangular; ventrals rounded, in front of 
each a broad recurved osseous plate, with recurved spines on 
the ventral edge. Claspers pedunculated, divided into three 
linear segments; the anteal one simple, the retral ones having 


ARCTIC CHIMJERA. 


149 


the opposite edges covered with numerous small reflected spines. 
A small anal fin opposite the extremity of the second dorsal; 
caudal fin above and below, broadest near the margin, gradually 
decreasing to a linear produced thread. 

It is not the least remarkable portion of the history of this 
fish, that whilst its most chosen residence is in the depths of 
the polar seas, it is also found in the Mediterranean, where 
it has been caught so frequently as to have received the familiar 
name of Cat from the fishermen of Nice. In explanation of 
this we can only suppose that in some former distribution of 
the temperature of our world, this fish inhabited other regions 
than those in which it is at present found; and that the 
extreme depths of the Mediterranean Sea continue to afford 
it aU the requisite conveniences for life and propagation, that 
are now also found, and more generally, in the more northern 
regions. 


150 


ACIPENSEE, 

The mouth under the snout, without teeth, the jaws capable of 
being drawn within the cavity. Barbs generally four, about midway 
between the mouth and snout. Nostrils in front of the eyes; spiracles 
behind the eyes; a single opening to the gills, covered with a 
moveable oper '.ulum. The tail with unequal lobes, and the vcrtebriB 
continued aiuug the upper lobe as in Sharks. 


STURGEONS. 

With a general likeness to tke form of tke Sharks, there 
are in this genus some remarkable departures from it, which 
shew a greater variation from that type, and a nearer approach 
to the bony class of fishes, than are seen in any other of the 
plagiostomes or cartilaginous tribes, in some particulars even 
amounting to a positive contrast. We may conclude also that 
the difference is equally great in the internal and less-observed 
organization, especially of the brain, which is of small size, 
and the nervous system in general; for their instinctive dis- 
position of timidity and the absence of violent appetites are 
more distinctly marks of variation, than the particulars to be 
pointed out of their merely external shape. 

The head of the Sturgeons is lengthened into a snout, which 
is slightly turned up; and the mouth is placed far beneath, 
with sensitive tendrils about midway between the mouth and 
snout. There is a spiracle behind each eye, by which 
a current of water is supplied to the gills, when, as must 
often happen from the manner in which they seek their food, 
the necessary supply cannot be obtained through the mouth. 

But at this point the resemblance to the family of Sharks 
becomes interrupted by the feebleness of the jaws, and the 
entire want of teeth; and in place of a formidable arrangement 
of offensive arms, as in that order, the lips are soft and fleshy, 
with, in the case of the Coimnon Sturgeon, separate lobes, 
that from the nerves distributed to them we judge to be 


STXJEGEONS. 


151 


endued 'witli considerable powers of feeling and taste; in wbicb 
sensations they are aided by the barbs which hang from the 
under surface of the snout. The fifth, or infraorbital pair of 
nerves, which are particularly the organs by which sensation 
or feeling is distributed, is furnished to the snout and barbs; 
while the facial branch of the nerve of hearing proceeds to 
the integuments of the mouth and lips, and also to the gill- 
covers, thus offering no slight support to the opinion that 
Sturgeons are susceptible of the influence of sounds, as well 
as of other acute sensations. 

In the nostrils also these fishes differ from the Sharks and 
Skates, by having them placed above the snout, and in front 
of the eyes, where it is usual to find them in the fishes 
characterized by the usual bony skeleton. The form of the 
body, and especially of the tail, approaches to that of the 
Sharks; but the resemblance of the latter becomes less on 
close inspection; for although the lobes are unequal, and the 
vertebral column is continued along the upper lobe to the end, 
the fin itself is distinctly supported by branched rays, as in 
many of the fishes belonging to other tribes. The general 
texture of the skin bears a near resemblance to what is found 
in Skates, being soft, and thickly covered with mucous pores; 
but the bony plates on the sides and head possess a texture 
and use which differ from what is generally found in plagi- 
ostomous fishes, and cause this fanarly to display a closer 
approach to a class which Mons. Agassiz has denominated the 
Placoid race; of which a large proportion is only found fossil, 
but of which one of the distinguishing characters is that they 
have on their bodies a defence of plates, shields, or scales, 
which are covered with a thick and firm coat of enamel. 
These plates are arranged in lines lengthwise on the body, 
and on the head and cheeks are flattened into shields; closely 
pressed together, in something like regular order, but without 
that strict orderly arrangement, at least along the middle line 
of the head and snout, which has been claimed for them, and 
by which it has been supposed some separate species might be 
defined. 

Professor Owen supposes that the intention of this special 
armature on the head and body is chiefly for protection in 
the situations which these fishes frequent. They were designed, 
he says, to be the scavengers of the great rivers; they swim 


152 


STURGEONS. 


low, grovel along the bottom, feeding in sboals on the 
decomposing animal and vegetable substances which are hurried 
down with the debris ot the continents drained by those rapid 
currents. Thus they are ever busied in re-converting the 
substances, which otherwise would tend to corrupt the ocean, 
into living organized matter. “These fishes are therefore duly 
weighted by a ballast of dense, dermal, osseous plates, not 
scattered at random over their surface, but regularly arranged, 
as the seaman knows how ballast should be, in orderly series 
along the middle and at the sides ot the body. The protection 
against the water-logged timber and stones hurled along their 
leeding-grounds, which the Sturgeons derive from their scale 
armour, renders needless the ossification of the cartilaginous 
case of the brain or other parts of the endoskeleton, and the 
weight of the armour requires that endoskeleton to be kept 
as light as may be compatible with its elastic property and 
other functions. The Sturgeons are further adjusted to their 
place in the liquid element, and endowed with the power of 
changing their level and rising with their defensive load to 
the surface by a large expansive air-bladder.” Protection to 
the eye is even more necessary than the other portions of 
the body, and accordingly this is provided for, in addition to 
the bony crust that surrounds and overtops it, by being deeply 
sunk in its small chamber, into which probably it still more 
deeply falls when danger tlireatens. 

How far the habits of these fishes will support the wide 
interpretation applied to their rigid armature by the above-named 
eminent philosopher, I am not prepared to decide; but there 
is another benefit, consistent with that already mentioned, 
which is derived from the presence of those plates, and which 
will be of great use to these fishes in some of the situations 
in which they must often find themselves placed. The bones 
of Sturgeons are remarkably soft, even for a race of fishes in 
which none of the bones are hard and firm; and they do not 
possess ribs, which organs aftord so strong a tulcrum for 
support to the action of muscles in bony fishes, but their place 
is well supplied by those substantial plates, which are not 
simply a covering to the surface, but dip within between the 
layers of the organs of motion, and thus enable the muscles 
of the body to exert such a degree of action as otherwise 
they would not be capable of. 


STURGEONS. 


153 


But ty the evidence of an intelligent fisherman, reported by 
Gcsner, these plates are also on some occasions converted 
into weapons of offence; and he had seen them used as such 
against the Huso, another fish of this family, of a still larger 
size than the Common Sturgeon but of a very timid nature, 
and against which the latter species is supj)osed to bear an 
instinctive animosity. The skin of the Huso is without any 
of those plates with which others of this family are defended, 
and it has been seen therefore to suffer severely firom the rough 
treatment of those cutting and tearing instruments brought 
into action by its enemy, from which it has sought in vain to 
escape by plunging in all directions. 

Nor is the internal organization of this family of fishes less 
a departure from the usual type of the Sharks, while still 
here also remains some degree of likeness, at least in the 
presence of a spiral valve to the intestine; by which organi- 
zation the functional power is lengthened out, whilst the bulk 
of the organ is packed into the smallest space its nature 
admits of. 

These fishes neither deposit their eggs in purses nor pro- 
duce fjrcir young alive; but their roe consists of small grains, 
which they shed in the same manner as bony fishes, in the 
fresh- water of the larger rivers ; which they enter for that 
purpose, and in particular districts, especially of the south of 
Russia and the Caspian Sea, in enormous multitudes, in con- 
sequence of which extensive and fiourishiiig fisheries are 
established for taking them. Their productiveness may be 
judged from the fact that, according to Pallas, ( Second Travels, 
voll i,) of the three species fished for seventeen hundred and 
fifty thousand have been caught in one year. Fifteen thousand 
have been taken in a day by one method of fishing, and, 
what is still more remarkable, if the fishermen should have 
been accidentally prevented from working during a single day, 
the fish have been known to accumulate in such numbers at 
the weir, as to fill the whole channel; insomuch that those 
which were uppermost appeared with their backs above water, 
in a river not less than twenty-eight English feet deep, and 
sixty fathoms wide. 

With such numbers it may be concluded that Sturgeons of 
the different sorts are highly prolific; and Adolph Erman, in 
VOL. I. z 


151 


STUiiGEONS. 


Ills journey into Siberia, mentions an example, of only six 
feet long, tlie roe of wliich measured tiro quarts j and another 
is recorded, that weighed two hundred and seventy-three 
pounds, the roe of which amounted to forty-two pounds, the 
supposed number being almost two millions. It is not there- 
fore in purses, or by internal hatching, that the young are 
produced to life, but more strictly in the manner of bony 
fishes, the grains being, however, rather large, and separated 
from each other throughout the mass by layers of fat. It is 
one of the principal objects of the Eussian fisheries to obtain 
this roe, which is carefully prepared, and valued by epicures 
under the name of Caviare. 

Another valuable product of this fishery, and of more general 
importance, is isinglass; which is formed of the air-bladders 
of two or three species of tliis genus, and of which, one of 
the smaller kinds, ( A. ruthenus,) is said to produce the best. 
The organ from which it is prepared is not found in any other 
of the plagiostomous genera, Shai-ks or Skates ; but in the family 
of Sturgeons it appears to be of great use in enabling the 
fish to rise and fall frequently and rapidly amid the currents 
of the larger rivers, as well as in the deeper waters of the 
sea. The stnicture of this organ has remarkable peculiarity, 
in the existence of a duct or passage of no small size, which 
passes from the bag to the gullet, and by which the air within 
may be occasionally discharged, and perhaps again renewed 
from without; for we are not able to affirm positively what is 
the special or complicated object of a structure which is only 
shared by a few of the fishes furnished with an air-bladder. 
In an example of the Common Sturgeon, of about eight feet 
in length, which I knew caught in a trammel in the open 
sea, as the fish was raised from the ground some observable 
bubbles of air were seen to break from the water; and I 
have no doubt they had been discharged from the fish, perhaps 
under the influence of the terror produced by its capture. 

Isinglass was known in ancient times by the name of 
ichthyocolla, or fish-glue, and it was used in the medical 
practice of Greece and Eome as a principal ingredient of 
their adliesive plaisters; but the fishes which produced it 
were on another account a subject of attention to the Eomans 
of the flourishing times of the emphe. 


STURGEONS. 


155 


At a time wlien luxury had reached perhaps the greatest 
development it has ever attained, the Sturgeon is named as 
one of its principal objects; hut it has been thought strange 
that while the Common Sturgeon is often taken on the shores 
of Italy, the poet Ovid, as if unacquainted with it in Italy, 
should term it 

“The noble Sturgeon from a ddsiani sea.” 

Varro also informs us, (de Ke rustica, B. 2,) that the best^ of 
these fishes were caught near the Island of Rhodes, on which 
account, we are told, they were sometimes called the Rhodian 
Galei, or Dog-fishes; to which Clumella adds, (B. 8, C. 16,) 
that this favourite fish was not found anywhere else. On these 
accounts Cuvier drew the easy conclusion that our Common 
Sturgeon was not the species so highly valued by the noble 
epicures of Rome, but another species of the same family, the 
Sterlet, fA. ruthenusj which is stiR held in high reputation 
in some countries. 

But in Cuvier’s remark above referred to, as compared with 
Ovid’s verses, there is an obvious oversight which requires 
explanation. Not only does the Roman poet speak of the 
Acipenser in the terms we have given, hut in another portion 
of the same poem he shews that he distinguishes between the 
Rhodian fish and the true Acipenser, and that, too, by only 
a slight variation of the same words:— 

“Tuque peregTiiiis Acipenser nobilis undis... ^ 

Eb preciosus Holops nostris inoognitns undis. 

“The noble Sturgeon from a distant sea... ^ 

Enknown the precious Helops in our sea. 

A Dutch commentator has endeavoured to reconcile the 
apparent contradiction between the words applied to the 
Acipenser, and the fact of its not unfrequent occurrence m 
Italy, by supposing the poet to mean that this fish, as ob- 
tained in distant countries, was of better quality than such 
as were procured in his native land. 

But that this most highly- valued of the family of Sturgeons, 
(the Helops,) was the same with the fish knomi to the Greeks 
by the same name, (Elops, or Ellops,) we learn as well from 
riiny as from circumstances attending its captui'c as described 
by iElian, from which we find no difficulty in tracing the 


lOD 


STURGEONS. 


origin of ceremonies concerning it as they were practised at 
Eome; and in so doing, also confirm our knowledge of the 
species. 

The Greek author informs us that when fishermen were so 
fortunate as to have caught an Elops, they adorned themselves 
and their boat with garlands, and brought the fish to land 
with shouts and music. The difference between this and the 
ceremony practised at Eome was only that the procession was 
made to marshal its progress from the kitchen to the table, 
instead of from the boat to the shore; and it was perhaps on 
account of the ceremony and the attendant expense, that 
hlartial in one of his epigrams, pronounced it a fish properly 
fit for a table at the palace; as by a sort of traditionary re- 
membrance, built on a mistake, but coimtenanced by law, the 
only Sturgeon known among us is still spoken of as subject to 
royal authority. 

But in spite of its former reputation, in the time of Pliny 
the Elops had sunk greatly in estimation; at which circumstance 
he expresses his wonder, as it possessed the principal qualifica- 
tion for exciting interest in the opinion of his countrymen, — of 
being brought from a very remote distance. 

But although it thus appears beyond doubt that the Common 
Sturgeon was not the fish so highly valued at the time referred 
to, we learn further from iElian some facts, from which we 
may safely gather that this more common species was in that 
day, as it had long been, the object of extensive fisheries in 
the rivers of the Caspian Sea. The name he gives it is 
Oxyrhyncus, or the Sharp-nose; and he says that it grows to 
the length of eight cubits, that it was salted and dried, and 
sometimes by taking away the fat it was made into meal, — a 
process which may apply to the preparation of what is now 
termed Caviare ; and in this condition it was carried on camels 
to Ecbatana, in Persia. They also made glue of a superior 
kind by boiling the entrails; and this, from its strength n'-d 
transparency, was employed in the formation of elegant woias 
of ivory. 


4 





XXXV 



U- 








- 4 - 


.ZA. • 






•' 

- -•• 

V-.'- 


;; 4 ; 


I 

% 

% 


r '■ ‘A 


'->r 



157 


COMMON STURGEON. 


Siurio, 

“ ar'penser, silurus, 
ills Sturcjem, 


Acipenser siurio, 

ti tt 

K M 

« l< 

t( (t 


Acipensere Esturgeon, 


JoNSTON; pi, 23, figs. 8, 9, 10. 

“Willoughby; p. 929, tab. p. 7. The name 
of Silv/ms had been applied to this fish 
by previous authors, who from ignorance 
had confounded it with the Sheat-fish, 
Silurus gliinis. 

Linnj£us and Cuviee. Bloch, pi. 88. 

Donovan, pi. 65. Fleming; Br. An., p. 173. 

Gray; Cat. Br. Museum, p. 13. 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 493. 

Yakeell; Br. Fishes, vol. ii, p. 475 and 479; 
Second Supplement. 

Laceeede and Eisso. 


The Common Sturgeon is the only one of this family which 
wanders widely from the principal haunts of its race. It is 
even found in the colder parts of the northern ocean, and not 
a season passes in which several are not taken on the coasts of 
Europe and the British Islands; where they often exercise 
their instinctive quality of pushing their way through the 
course of the deeper rivers. It is the opinion of naturalists 
chat, as hi the case of the Salmon, this reciprocal change from 
salt-water to fresh is important to the health of the fish; and 
that it is not adopted for the piu-pose alone of depositing 
spawn appears from the fact that no instance has been detected 
of the shedding of roe in British rivers, 'w..'’-e, from their 
multitudes, they could scarcely have escaped discovery. A few 
examples have occurred where a fish has been obtained 
among us of small size; and an example in the possession of 
Mr. Yarrell measured only a foot in length. But I believe 
no record exists of the place whence this specimen was ob- 
tained, and it is not certain that the roe when shed is injured 
by being placed in salt-water, 


COMMON STURGEON. 


loS 


The Sturgeon is sometimes taken of a size which must 
strike with wonder those who have only had an opportunity 
of seeing the usual inhabitants of our rivers, among which, 
tliis fish appears indeed a Triton among the Minnows. From 
eight to ten or eleven feet is the usual length, and the 
weight is to the full correspondent with the dimensions. In 
some rivers especially, as the Parret, and on the Welsh 
Channel near Swansea, large Sturgeons have shewn themselves 
at particular periods, as well as in the Wye and TJsk; and 
it is to be noticed that this has happened about the month 
of May, at wliich time they are ceasing to be caught in the 
Caspian and Russian rivers, tlie only time of ceasing to fish 
for them in the last-named countries being in summer. The 
largest example recorded as British is mentioned by Pennant, 
and weighed four hundred and sixty pounds. I possess a 
memorandum of another, which weighed three hundred and 
fifty pounds; but what are these in comparison to the enor- 
mous jicipenser huso, wliich has been seen of fifty-six feet in 
length. — (Historical and Geographical Description of the North 
and East Part of Europe and Asia, by J. P. Strathlenbcrg, 4to, 
1738.) He sjicaks from personal knowledge. 

Although the Sturgeon is a timid fish as compared witli 
the generality of the inhabitants of the sea, its great strength 
may render it capable of inflicting considerable injury on those 
who meddle with it incautiously, on its becoming entangled 
in their net. A blow from the tail would probably break the 
leg of a man. As a precaution therefore, the fishermen 
accustomed to the work endeavour to bring the fish sidewise 
to the land, with the net enclosing it, and the head lifted 
out of the water, in which position it ceases to offer any 
further resistance. A Sturgeon which was caught within my 
knowledge, was entirely helpless after it had discharged an 
observable quantity of air, although it then lay in a net at 
the depth of several fathoms. 

When at liberty it is the habit of this fish to seek its food 
by turning up the soft bottom of the river or sea with its 
sensitive and moveable snout; and the quickness of feeling in 
these parts, including the barbs hanging from them, enable it 
to discern and select whatever is appropriate to its appetite. 
Worms are probably a favourite food, but in a paragraph 


COMMON STUKGEON. 


159 


taken from an American newspaper, I have seen it announced 
that a lady’s riding-whip, twenty-one inches long and mounted 
with silver, had been found in the stomach of a Sturgeon of 
no large size. The fish might be of a different species from 
our own, but the fact seems to shew that not all of them 
are satisfied with merely molluscous food. 

The Common Sturgeon is generally valued at the tables of 
the rich; and indeed it appears that by some mistake the 
high reputation of the once celebrated Sterlet or Elops, has 
slid away to what, by all accounts, although stdl good., is a 
fish of lower (luality. IVhen taken in the Thames, within the 
jurisdiction of the Lord Mayor, it is usually judged a proper 
present for the Royal table; but although still regarded as a 
dainty, it is mentioned among other things by Fitz-Stephen, 
who wrote an account of London in the twelfth century, as 
being a dish to be obtained with ease at the then newly- 
erected hostelry in the city. 

Dr. Parnell, when closely studying the British fishes of the 
northern districts of our island, was led to believe that there 
were two British species of what had hitherto been treated 
as one; and from the prominent characters on which Ins 
distinction was built, he was led to give them the names of the 
Broad-nosed and the Narrow-nosed species. If individual 
examples are to be selected there is no doubt that such a 
division might be maintained; and accordingly, naturalists, whose 
observations at this early stage were limited to the few 
examples preserved in museums, came forward to confirm 
these distinctions, and to add others derived from the partic 
ular nature and arrangement of the bony plates covering the 
head. The more modern works on the natural history of 
fishes, contain iUustrative figures of this kind; but more ex- 
tended inquiry has gone far to throw doubt on the supposition 
that there is more than one British sjiecies of the Common 
Sturgeon. The Broad-headed and the Narrow-snouted varieties 
hi their extreme divergency differ greatly, and the latter 
appears to be the most numerous of the two. But there has 
been found every gradation of form among them, so that in 
many an instance it would be difficult to assign its proper 
place to the individual example; and with regard to the form 
and arrangement of the plates which cover the head, although 


IGO 


COMMON STUKGEON. 


in tlie more prominent parts there is some approach to regu- 
larity, on the whole tliis may be even the least depended on. 
Not only do the diiFcrent varieties differ in this respect, hut 
the variation exists in the same individual; so that a cord, 
laid along the middle line from the top of the head to the 
snout, shall sometimes separate the sides into portions which 
do not answer to each other. 

With regard to the plates on the back, Linnaeus, in his 
specific character of this fish assigns to it a row of eleven 
plates along the dorsal ridge; whereas Willoughby tells us 
that he had counted from eleven to tliirteen in several different 


examples; and particularly he mentions that behind the single 
dorsal fin there were no dorsal plates, where in most figures 
they are represented; and in the specimen presently to be 
described this portion of the body was ornamented and de- 
fended by a pair of parallel rows. Several other variations of 
figure might be brought forward, but I judge sufficient has been 
said to shew that the division of this well-known Common 
Sturgeon into two species has a less certain foundation in 
nature than has been supposed. 

Our description of this fish is taken from an example kindly 
presented by WiUiam Thompson, Esq., of Weymouth, whose 
desire to extend the boundaries of science has shewn itself 
in sim‘''ar instances on many former occasions. In this instance 
the obligation is so much the greater that it has enabled me 
with more ease, and at longer intervals, to examine the 
minuter particulars of form and structure, than if I had been 
limited to an inspection of what was exhibited in the boat of 
a fisherman, or a fishmonger’s shop. 

The example described measured three feet seven inches in 
length. The head at top is depressed into a wide channel, 
with the ridges on the sides more prominent; it slopes gradually 
to the snout, which becomes almost sharp at the end, where 
it is slightly bent up. This surface, and also the sides of the 
face are formed of a bony crust which is divided into sections; 
but when first from the water these divisions can scarcely be 
made out, and it is only when the suj-face has become 
dry that those plates can be distinguished, which have been 
represented in drawings of those parts. An elevated prominence 
stands before each eye. The plates arc more numerous, smaller, 


COMMOM STURGEON. 


161 


and more separate over tlie snout; and in all cases, as well 
of the head as body, their surface is rough with radiated 
lines. The eye is small, and sunk into a well-guarded cavity, 
but is probably capable of protrusion. The nostrils are large, 
in front of the eyes, and have a single cavity within, of which 
the bottom is formed of a full circle of separate bony rays, 
proceeding from a centre. On the surface it is crossed by a 
membranous band, which gives the nostril the appearance of 
being double, as in most bony fishes, but I could not discern 
any membranous division within. The mouth is fleshy , re- 
tractile, and seems not capable, except by living action, of 
being closed. Teeth none. Bones of the jaws slight, the lips 
with lohes, which probably have a quick feeling of touch and 
taste. In fr'ont of the mouth, and rather nearer the snout 
than it, are two pairs of tendrils, of considerable length. A 
small spiracle belfrnd the eye, between the border of the 
anterior gill-cover and the plates of the head. The hinder 
gill-cover, which is much the largest, being formed of a single 
plate, with radiating lines, appears fallen in and incapable of 
concealing the gills, the more especially as these gill-covers do 
not possess a membranous border. 

The body is lengthened. The dorsal and lateral ridges, 
which are five in number, are so prominent that the surface 
a23pcars flaccid between them, the surface being soft and flexible, 
with numerous jjores. The dorsal row of plates, of which the 
summits are not incurved, consist of fourteen, there being an 
interruption in the line, where the place of one is represented 
by a pair. The first rays of the dorsal fin are also armed 
with plates along their edge; between that fin and the tail 
there is a double parallel row, the edge of the caudal fin 
being also guarded by pointed plates. Number of plates on 
the side thirty, on the border of the belly ten, reaching to 
the ventral fins. Pectoral fins wide, with the first ray stout, 
seeming to admit of motion easily forward and backward, but 
not freely above or below. The ventral fins are far behind, 
but anterior to the vent; the dorsal and anal hook-shajied, and 
not far from the tail. The upper lobe of the caudal fin is 
lengthened, and the vertebrae, as in the Sharks, carried along 
to near its edge, but there is no slit to separate the upper 
lobe from that below. The rays of this fin differ from those 


162 


noMMON STURGEON. 


of Sharks in general, in being bifurcated or divided after the 
manner of bony fishes. The colour a dull olive blue, the belly 
white. 

In common with a multitude of other things, the Sturgeon 
has been an object of superstition. .Lhat C[uaint but learned 
hunter out of such recondite matters, the antiquaidan Aubrey, 
records it as commonly reported, that before an heir of the 
Clifton of Clifton, in Nottinghamshire, dies, a Sturgeon is 
caught in the River Trent near that place. 





f 




? 





XXXVI 


163 


HUSO. 


Huso, Wir-totFGTlBY; p. 248, tab. p. 7. 

Aci'genseT huso, IiiNN.®us. Cuvier. Blocii, pi. 129. 

We introduced the name of this species into our pages, 
because we woidd direct the attention of British naturalists to 
the possibility of its occurrence in our waters, and in the 
hope that on the report of the capture of an example of 
what might pass as the common species, an examination may 
be made, whether in fact it may not be an example of this, 
as yet questionable species. It stands on the list of Irish 
fishes, as having more than once been met with in that 
country; and so much as is known of these rcjiorted cap- 
tures, is given in the fourth volume of Mr. M^illiam Ihompson s 
“Natural History of Ireland;” but unfortunately no figure 
or particular description appear to have been taken from the 
fishes themselves. The following is all that Mr. Thompson 
says on the subject; — 

“In 1847 I contributed the following note to the ‘Annals 
of Natural History,’ vol. xx ‘Isinglass Sturgeon, Acipenser 
huso, Liniiffius.) A notice of the occurrence of this species 
on the coast of Cork, in July, 1845, was communicated to 
the ‘Annals,’ (vol. xvi, p. 213,) by Mr. John Humphreys, of 
the city of that name. This gentleman, as well as Di . Harvey, 
of Cork, who subsequently examined the specimen, assures me 
that it was A. huso, as represented in Shaw’s ‘Zoology,’ vol. 
V, p. 159- Mr. Humphreys has informed me of the capture 
of another specimen, which was taken in the second week of 
April, 1847, at Carrigeen, near Curriglass, on the Kiver 
Bride", not far from its junction with the Blackwater. It 
measured seven feet eight inches in length, and weighed 
nearly two hundredweight.” 

Shaw’s description of this species is as folloivs:— “Isinglass 


164 


HUSO. 


Sturgeon, {Acipenser huso, Linnaeus.) A larger fish than the 
Common Sturgeon, having been often found of the length of 
twenty-five feet; general shape the same; colour dusky, or 
blackish blue above, silvery on the sides and abdomen, with 
a tinge of rose-colour on the latter; general appearance 
smoother than in the Common Sturgeon, the dorsal tubercles 
being less protuberant, and those along the sides much smaller, 
and in some specimens of a very advanced growth altogether 
wanting; mouth much larger than in the A. sturio, with thick 
crescent-shaped lips; skin smooth and viscid. Native of the 
Northern, (Black,) and Caspian and Mediterranean Seas, 
migrating from them into the adjoining rivers; found more 
particularly in the Volga and Danube.” — (Shaw’s “General 
Zoology,” vol. v, p. 375, pi. 159.) 

Another description is, — Snout very obtuse, shorter than the 
diameter of the mouth, but like the Common Sturgeon, sub- 
ject to variation in this respect. Eyes very small. Body thick, 
with five rows of plates; the fins small. As the fish attains 
its full growth these plates often drop off, so that none appear. 

I find among my notes, that, in company with Mr. Yarrell, 
I had an opportunity of seeing the head and tad, without the 
body, of a Sturgeon, the snout of which was very short, fiat, 
and bent upward, as that of the Huso is represented in the 
very rough plates of the old writers; but as Mr. Yarrell has 
not referred to this species in his work on British fishes, I 
conclude that he did not suppose the evidence of its being the 
Huso sufficient to authorise his classing that species among the 
acknowledged fishes of our seas. 


165 


BONY FISHES. 

The large family of bony fishes, or Acanthopterygians, is 
readily distinguished from the Plagiostomes, and from a third 
that will follow, by marks which are easily recognised; and 
which also are closely associated with the instincts and modes of 
life of the several subordinate tribes of which this class is 
composed. The visible prevailing characters are, that the jaws 
are nearly equal, and at the extremity of the head. Every 
departure from this particular will appear only relative. In 
their mode of formation as well as generally in shape, their 
teeth difi'er from those of the Sharks, in having their origin 
in a membrane which lies along the border of the jaws, and 
they rise directly from this portion of their gum, with their 
points upward, into the place where they are to remain, sup- 
plying the place of such as have already performed their 

duty, and, by losing their attachment, are about to be shed. 

There is, therefore, a perpetual succession, but it is of indi- 
viduals and not of ranks. They are attached to, but do not 
penetrate into the jaws; and the formative membrane does not 
perish, as in Sharks, with the teeth it had formed. The 

nostrils are usually double, and of small size, placed above 
the line of the snout, and before the eyes. The gill openings 
are single on each side, with often a wide aperture, and 

usually also with a gill membrane, furnished with bones. The 
body is, for the most part, covered with scales; the fins 
usually stand on joints, often with firm spines, and the mem- 
brane is usually to be easily distinguished from the rays, even 
when the structure is less firm. The tail partakes of the 
nature of the other fins; the vertebra ending in a separate 
plate, perhaps divided into branches at its root; and to it the 
caudal rays are attached. 


16 B 


BONY FISHES. 


The races are continued by the shedding of spawn, the 
grains ,of which are of small size. In a very few species, 
one or two only of which are found in Britain, this spawn is 
hatched within the body of the parent; and in one other remark- 
able family, (the SyngnatM,) some very curious means are adopted 
to secure the completion of this natural proceeding. But 
whatever subordinate variations of these general principles, of 
form or habit, may offer themselves to our notice in particular 
families, will be pointed out in their proper place. 







S 

V " 

‘ J 







1. THREE-SPIN ED STICKLEBACK. 
■2. TINKER. 


X.^XVII 


167 


GASTEROSTEUS. 

The cheeks covered with mailed plates. Back with free spines 
anterior to the dorsal fin. These spines have usuallj' a slight mem- 
branous border on their posterior edge, but do not constitute a nn. 
The belly is strengthened with a stout bone in front, from whence the 
generic name. To this bone, and the apparatus attached to it, are 
fastened the ventral fins, the outer ray of which is a weapon of 
offence. The gill membrane has no more than three rays. 

Linnaeus reckons this genus in his class of thoracic fishes; in which 
the ventral fins are not attached to the thorax, nor behind to the 
pelvis, but to the belly between these parts, and nearly under the 
pectoral fins. 


THREE-SPINED STICKLEBACK. 

BANSTICKLE. MINNIS. SHAKPLING. PEICKLEFISH. 


Fungitms MbeHi, 

(( it 

Gasterosteus aculeatus, 

« ff 

“ i/raclinruSf 

“ gyyyiUUTUS'S&f^lOLTYflCltuSj 

“ leiuruSf 

<( it 

“ hracliyce7itrus, 

“ spimdosus, 

(t » 

it « 

Gasterostee epinochs, 


JoNSTOX; with a very poor figure. 

WiM-ouGHB?; p. 341, tab. x, 14, the 
figure bad. He supposes this fish 
to bo the Cenbrisem of Theophrastus. 

LlNNiEUS AND BlOCH; pi. 53. 

Donovan; pi. 11. 

OuviEE. Kough-tailed Stickleback. 

Odvibr. Half-armed Stickleback. 

Cuvier. Smooth-tailed Stickleback. 

Yareell; Br. E., vol. i, p. 90, 94, 95. 

Yaeeell; Br. E., vol. i, p. 96, ? and 
in Loiiclou’s Mag., vol. iii, p. 521. 

Yaiieell; Br. E., vol. i, p. 97 P 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 348. 

De. Guntuee; Catalogue of Dishes in 
the British Museum, vol. i, p. 2. 

Lacei’ede and Eisso. 


This race of fishes is generally of small size, and on that 
account commonly overlooked or disregarded by the casual 
observer. Yet they occupy an important place in the economy 


168 


THREK-SPINED STICKEEBACK. 


of Providence, whilst the elegance and complexity of their 
form, only require examination to excite admiration, and their 
habits and instincts are so full of curiosity as to secure 
attention when it has been directed towards Ihem. 

Our Common Sticklebacks are inhabitants of both salt-water 
and fresh, but they do not in preference frequent the open 
sea, and a quiet union of the sea-water with the fresh appears 
the most congenial with their nature, as we may judge by 
the abundance to be met with in such situations. In large 
ponds of this description they increase to an enormous extent, 
and may be seen traversing their daily range again and again, 
in numerous companies, and hunting eagerly for food, which 
appears to be formed of any of the smaller inhabitants of the 
water they are able to swallow. Myriads of the half-developed 
young of flying insects — the smaller creatures whose ollice it 
is to keep down superfluous increase of vegetable life, but 
which themselves might otherwise multiply in numbers too 
great, so as to be among the evils themselves were destined 
to abate,— and, we must add, the young of such fishes as are 
then bursting into life: all of these contribute to the suste- 
nance of these tribes of wandering plunderers, until at last 
their numbers also have grown to be excessive. Birds feed 
on them; but their formidable enemy is man, and with his 
net they are swept to the bank in helpless heaps, to become 
of some service to the people who have been at the trouble 
to catch them. In some places they are employed for the 
purpose of feeding ducks or pigs; and sometimes they are 
drawn on shore in such heaps as to serve for manure, for 
which purpose they are said to be of considerable value, a 
fact not improbable, when, according to Lacepede, they are 
known to afford by pressure a good supply of oil, which we 
suppose can only come from the liver. 

In the Baltic, Professor Nilsson says that about the beginning 
of November, before they retire to their winter quarters, they 
assemble on the coasts of that sea in incredible shoals, and 
are caught in boat-loads by fishermen. The only use made of 
them is to boil them for the purpose of skimming the fluid for 
the oil. A bushel of these fish yields about two gallons of oil. 
The refuse is employed for manure. 

They breed generally in summer, and then it is that the most 


TIIREE-SFINED STICKLEBACK. 


169 


amiable and intense of their feelings are stirred into exercise, 
and a degree of ingenuity brought into action, which the 
world has agreed to deny the existence of among the inhabi- 
tants of the waters, but which observation has shewn to prevail 
especially in this small family, although perhaps it only requires 
more extended observation to prove its existence in other 
families also. 

The earliest notices that were given to the world on the 
care bestowed on their young by the family of Sticklebaclcs, 
were derived from a careful watching of the proceedings of 
another species, the Fifteen-spined Stickleback, (altogether an 
inhabitant of the sea,) to which reference will be made again. 
But the observations which follow were recorded independent 
of such as apply to the last-named fish; and, taken in connection 
with them, they claim perhaps an additional degree of interest 
from the fact that they were made by an observer of nature 
who was unacquainted with natural history as a science, and 
especially could not have been aware of what was then closely 
studied by others on a kindred species. The following is 
extracted from a periodical publication of the year 1834, 
entitled the “Youth’s Instructor.” 

“In a large dock for shipping on the River Thames, 
thousands of Pricklefish were bred some years ago, and I have 
often amused myself for hours by observing them. While multi- 
tudes have been enjoying themselves near the shore in the 
warm sunshine, others have been busily engaged making their 
nests, if a nest it may be called. It consisted of the very 
minutest pieces of straw or sticks, the exact colour of the 
ground at the bottom of the water, on which it was laid, so that 
it was next to an impossibility for anyone to discover the nest, 
unless they saw the fish at work, or observed the eggs. The 
nest is somewhat larger than a shilling, and has a top or cover, 
with a hole in the centre, about the size of a very small 
nut, in which are deposited the eggs or spawn. This opening 
is frequently concealed by drawing small fragments over it, 
but this is not always the case. Many times have I taken up 
the nest, and thrown the eggs to the multitude around, which 
they instantly devoured with the greatest voraeity. These eggs 
are about the size of poppy seeds, and of a bright yellow 
colour; but I have at times seen them almost black, which, I 


170 


THREE-SPINED STICKLEBACK. 


suppose, is an indication tliat they are approachinj? to life. In 
inahing the nest 1 observed that the hsh used an nnnsnal 
degree of force when conveying the material to its destination. 
W^hen the fish was about an inch from the nest, it suddenly 
darted at the spot, and left the tiny fragment in its place, after 
which it M'ould be engaged for half a minute in adjusting it. 
The nest, when taken up, did not separate, but hung together 
like a piece of wool.” The place chosen by these fishes for 
their nests is where the ground forms an inclined plane, and 
in about six inches of water. 

Individuals of these fishes were placed in a glass vessel, 
that their proceedings in forming the nest and bringing forward 
the young might be the more conveniently observed. A nest 
was accordingly formed, but unfortunately the female died 
soon after the process of shedding the roe had been perfected. 
The male was seen to be often engaged in throwing a cur- 
rent of water through the nest, and in an early part of the 
proceeding he often rubbed his body over it, which was 
supposed to be for the purpose of shedding the milt. The 
eggs, in number about fifty, were brought to life in three 
weeks, and at first the young appeared transparent. The 
male, which, in other instances also, seemed to have the sole 
care and protection of the brood, attended upon them care- 
fully j and if any one of them trespassed beyond the allotted 
bounds, he followed and brought the truant back in his 
mouth, and again replaced it in or near the nest. 

The Swedish naturalist Eckstrom gives, as the result of his 
observation, a diifercnt account from this; and it will be worthy 
of inquiry whether the proceeding may be different in different 
countries. As soon, says he, as the nest is ready, the male 
dresses himself in his finest colours, which are blue, green, 
yellow, and silver; and swimming among the shoals of females 
which are assembled in the neighbourhood ready to deposit 
their roe, he lures one of them into the little arbour; and when 
she has spawned he proceeds to entice another, until at last he 
has accumulated a large number of eggs; over which he keeps a 
strict guard until they are hatched, which is in about three 
weeks; and even after this his care does not cease, for he is 
seen even to collect food and bring it within their reach. 

It is thus that protection of the young is the important 


TTIREE-SPINEn STICKLEBACK. 


171 


trust' committed to the male fish, ^until by growth they are 
able to take their place among the full-grown tribes^ of then- 
race. And well ought they to be fitted for this position, for 
it not unfrequently involves danger on every side. There are 
circumstances, indeed, which render it probable that at times, 
perhaps periodically, an epidemic fury seizes them, and that 
a general slaughter of the weakest is the result. Mr. Peach, 
to whom I have already had occasion to refer, informs me, 
that in the north of Scotland, where this fish is common 
they get into pools of the rocks at the highest water-mark of 
the^ tide, and build their nests. Unconnected with the sea, 
except at spring tides, the water becomes warm from the heat 
of the sun; and there the young are hatched under the 
guardianship of the parents, until they are strong enough to 
quit the place; after which, toward the decline of the year, 
not one is to be found, except, indeed, some scores of the 
adult fish, which are left dead, without any other obvious 
cause besides their mutual love of fighting. 

But little attention indeed is sufficient to discover that this 
little family of fishes is an irritable race, and disposed to a 
display of the domineering impulses of tyranny and oppression, 
in the exercise of which they are not slow to manifest their 
consciousness of the formidable nature of the arms they bear, 
and of their power to wield them with deadly effect. VVoe 
betide an enemy that ventures on an attack. I placed an 
individual of the best-armed variety in a vessel in which two 
small crabs were already confined, and being not a little 
hungry, one of the crabs shewed an inclination to make the 
new-made prisoner his prey. But in a,ll his attacks the 
Stickleback was equal to the occasion. He kept his welhaimed 
tail towards the enemy, and depressed and employed it in a 
manner unlike what most fishes could accomplish, but in 
which the inferior processes of the vertebrae where shewn to be 


no hindrance. 

The following will further illustrate these manners ot the 
Sticklebacks, as they are brought into active opposition with 
each other, and where the contest is with no other apparent 
obiect than a display of the pride of victory. “Having,” says 
a writer in Loudon’s “Magazine of Natural History,” vol. iii, 
“at various times kept this little fish during the spring and 


172 


THREE-SPINED STICKLEBACK. 


part of the summer months, and paid close attention to their 
habits, I am enabled, from my own experience, to vouch for 
the facts I am about to relate. I have generally kept them 
in a deal tub, about three feet long, two feet wide, and about 
two feet deep. When they are put in, for some time (pro- 
bably a day or two) they swim about in a shoal, apparently 
exploring their new habitation. Suddenly one will take pos- 
session of the tub, or, as it will sometimes happen, the bottom, 
and will instantly commence an attack upon his companions; 
and, if any one of them ventures to oppose his sway, a regular 
and most furious battle ensues; they swim round and round 
with the greatest rapidity, biting, (their mouths being well 
furnished with teeth,) and endeavouring to pierce each other 
with their lateral spines, which, on these occasions, are projected. 
I have witnessed a battle of this sort, which lasted several 
minutes before either would give way; and when one does 
submit, imagination can hardly conceive the vindictive fury of 
the conq^ueror, who, in the most persevering and unrelentive 
way, chases his rival from one point of the tub to another, 
until fairly exhausted with fatigue. From this period an 
interesting change takes place in the conqueror, who, from 
being a speckled and greenish-looking fish, assumes the most 
beautiful colours; the belly and lower jaws becoming a deep 
crimson, and the back sometimes a cream-colour, but generally 
a fine green, and the whole appearance full of animation and 
spirit. I have occasionally known three or four parts of the 
tub taken possession of by as many other little tyrants, who 
guard their territories with the strictest vigilance, and any, 
the slightest invasion brings on invariably a battle. As may 
be expected they usually light best on their own ground, and 
the invader is generally repelled; but when the contrary occurs 
the victor adds the defeated party’s possession to his own. A 
strange alteration takes place almost immediately in the defeated 
party; his gallant bearing forsakes him; his gay colours fade 
away; he becomes again speckled and ugly; and he hides his 
disgrace among his peaceable companions, who occupy together 
that part of the tub which their tyrants have not possession 
of; he is, moreover, for some time the constant object of his 
conqueror’s persecution. It is scarcely necessary to observe 
that these are the habits of the male fish alone; the females 


THEEE-SPINED SPICKEEBACK. 


173 


are quite pacific, appear fat, as if full of spawn, never 
assume the brilliant colours of the male, by whom, as far as I 
have observed, they are unmolested. The bite of these little 
furies is so severe, that I have frequently known it, when 
inflicted on the tail, produce mortification, and, consequently, 
death. They also use their lateral spines with such fatal 
effect, that, incredible as it may appear, I have seen one 
during a battle absolutely rip his opponent quite open, so 
that he sunk to the bottom and died. Another fact in the 
history of these interesting little creatures also deserves notice; 
it is curious, and to me ruiaccountable. Previously to death 
they re-assume aU their brilliant colours, which they may 
have lost from defeat; but they arc not so clear and distinct 
as when in the height of their power.” 

It was one of the results of Baron Cuvier’s more attentive 
examination of the diflPerences among the species hitherto 
considered identical, that he was led to separate what had 
before been regarded as one species of Gasterosteus into 
three, on the foundation of the different degrees of arming 
of the plates which cover the sides. On the authority of 
such a competent observer this division of species at first 
met with little opposition, and accordingly it found a j)lace 
in Mr. Yarrell’s “History of British Fishes,” where each of 
these supposed species is individually represented. From the 
first, however, Mr. Jenyns expressed his doubts, which he 
stated in his work referred to at the beginning of this 
article. Kenewed enquiry has gone on to shew further, that 
if these three varieties are to be definitely distinguished from 
each other, several others must fall under the same distinction; 
since there is no exact number of increase or decrease to the 
plates on the sides, on which characters it was the definitions 
were built. And these are not the only parts which are liable 
to variation, although the others have not been taken into 
account by writers whose attention has been directed chiefly 
to systematic arrangement. But if for the sake of simplicity, 
as well as of truth, we can consider the British species of 
this family that are marked by three or four free dorsal 
spines, as only varieties of one, we may with confidence 
affirm that no known kinds of fishes are equally disposed to vary 
their forms or change their apparent character. I shall best 
VOL. I. 2 0 


174 


THREE-SPINEl) STICKLEBACK. 


satisfy the intention I have in view in the account of these 
fishes, hy giving a description, as -well as a figure, of each 
of the varieties as they have come within my observation; 
and my earnest thanks are due to Edmund T. Higgins, Esq., 
of Bristol, for the opportunity I have had of examining some 
examples of more than the usual size — giants of their race — 
which were obtained hy him from the neighbourhood of 
Liverpool, and selected from a multitude of others that shewed 
no difference from the more common examples obtained in 
other districts. 

Willoughby describes this fish as growing to the length of 
two inches and a quarter, and Sir. Jenyns to three inches. 
Sly largest example measured three inches and three fourths; 
its depth one inch. The body compressed, sloping circularly 



from the first spine to the mouth; under jaw longest, gape 
rather small, teeth conspicuous. From the upper jaw the 
head is covered with a cuirass, the border of which bends 
down at the sides on a line with the gill-covers; a separate 
plate with a blunt projection about the pectoral fins. The 
pectoral fins attached to a broad half-circular plate, and below 
this a plate which extends a rounded angle back towards the 
belly. On the ridge of the back are three plates, on the two 
hindmost of which are seated the two first free spines; a third 
and shorter spine is close to the origin of the dorsal fin. 
Four plates pass downward from these dorsal plates or shields, 
and two of them reach the ventral plates, one of which is 
broad, and covers the belly to the vent. It is bound down 
through the whole length, and a prominence or line runs 


THKEE-SPINED STICKLEBACK. 


175 


througli the middle of it; and on each side of the origin of 
this flat plate or ventral shield, (which in some degree serves 
the jmrposc of a sternum, as Avell as a defensive armour for 
the breast,) is a sharp sphie of considerable length, and 
finely serrated on its upper border or edge. This formidable 
sj^ear is in fact one of the two which serve to spread the 
membrane of the ventral fins, but it is the weapon with which 
all the deadly contests of this fish arc conducted. There is a 
slight spine in front of the anal fin. '^I'he dorsal and anal 
fins are on the hinder part of the body; and the origin of 
the latter is a little behind that of the former. The body 
grows slender as it approaches the tail, the latter organ in its 
folded state being concave. When dry the plates or shields 
before mentioned appear rough. Colour of the back olive 
brown, well defined on the sides; below, and on the fins and 
tail a dull yellow: the colours influenced, no doubt, by the 
spirit in which these fishes had been preserved. Formulce of 
the fin rays, — pectoral ten, dorsal fifteen or sixteen, ventral 
two, caudal eleven, with some small rays. 

Another example of the same variety, and about the same 



length, was of a much more slender form, and in other 
respects, different proportions, the dorsal and anal fins being 
also carried nearer to the tail; and in a third, which may be 
termed the Half-armed Stickleback, while the depth of body 
nearly answers to the example we first described, the dorsal 
and anal fins are reduced to much smaller dimensions, there 
is an elevated ridge near the side of the tail, and the tail 
itself is straight. The lateral plates in this variety never 
descend to join with the shield of the belly, and contract 
suddenly in dimension opposite the third dorsal spine. The 
colour of these fishes partakes of every variety, from sober 
brown to a brilliant green, with rcddhli or crimson tints. 


176 


TINKEE. 


ten-spined stickleback. 


Piscis OMuleaiua minor, 
Gasterosteus %nmgitius, 

(( (( 

« ii 

(I it 

U t< 


n 


(« 


WllLOTJGlIBT; p. 342. 

Linnaiits. Bloch; pi. 53, f. 4. 

Dokovan; pi. 32. Lachpede. 

Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 219. 

Loudon’s Mag. of Nat. Hist., vol. iii, p. 332. 
Yabeell; Br. Fishes, vol. i, p. 99. 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 350; Zoologist, vol. xiv, 
p. 5124. 

Guntiibe ; Catalogue of Fishes in the British 
Museum, vol. i, p. 6. 


There is a little fish of the family of Sticldehacks, -which 
is still smaller than the ordinary size of the thi-ee-spined 
species, so that it is almost the smallest of British fishes; hut, 
although widely dispersed, it is not so commonly met -with as 
the others. In shape it is a little more slender, and the body 
is not defended with plates, although a slight ridge near the 
tail is represented in Donovan’s plate, and referred to as of 
casual occurrence by Cuvier and other descrihers; but it is 
particularly distinguished by having nmc or ten spines (Wil- 
loughby says eleven) on the back; these spines being of 
course smaller and closer together (Fleming says more irregu- 
larly disposed) than in the three and four-spined species. As 
distinguished from the others its habits are best described by 
Mr. Newman, in the “Zoologist,” as above referred to, whose 
account we therefore for the most part copy. Another observer 
also remarks, that although less formidably or securely armed 
than most of the others, it is much the most quarrelsome of 
its family. 

Mr. Newman says: — “In the ‘Fishes of Scandinavia,’ plate 
iv, fig. 2, is figured, under the name of G. pungitius, a 


TINKER. 


177 


Gasterosteus having nine spines on the back, and coloured 
red about the lower jaw, cheeks, gill-cover, and base of the 
pectoral. I have to regret that my ignorance of the Swedish 
language prevents my understanding a single word of the 
description, but the plates in this work are the most scrupu- 
lously accurate of any natural history representations I have 
yet seen, and therefore I ttike the evidence as perfectly 
conclusive, that the G, pungitkes, or ‘Sma Spigg’ of Sweden, 
is a fish the male of which assumes a red breast ^ in the 
breeding season. There is no doubt that the G. pungihus, of 
Linna3us, Cuvier, and of the ‘Fishes of Scandinavia, is one 
and the same fish. Well then, we arrive at this conclusion, 
that there is on tlie continent of Europe a fresh- water Gas- 
terosteus, which has constantly nine dorsal spines, (but Nilsson 
assigns it ten,) which has keeled scales on the sides of its 
tail, and the male of which, in its nuptial livery, is red about 
the gills and breast, like the familiar G. aculeatus. 

“Now for the contrast: we have in the ditches round London 
myriads of a very minute fresh-water fish, known to every boy 
who goes a stilling by the name of Tinker; this fish has nine 
spines on the back, a jierfcctly smooth tail, and the male in 
nuptial livery is of the most intense velvety black, never by 
any chance exhibiting the slightest tinge of red. iurning 
again to Cuvier I find appended to the description of G. 
pungitius the following note, (translated:)— There is also in 
our streams a species nearly akin, (G. Imvis, Cuvier,) which 
is without this arming: and in the subsequently published 
“Natural History of Fishes,” by Cuvier and Valenciennes, (v. 
iv,) this smooth-tailed species stands as G. pungitius, the G. 
pungitius of the animal kingdom being omitted altogether. 

“Mr. Yarrell has given two figures of a G. pungitius in the 
first and second editions of liis admirable history ; neither of 
the cuts gives an exact idea of our familiar little riiikei, but 
that in the first'edition comes the nearest. The description in 
both editions is the same, and is comprised in a very few 
words. The colour is described as a yellowish or olive green 
on the back; sides and belly silvery white, with minute specks 
of black; fins pale yellowish white.” 

Mr Newman then goes on to describe the fish as found 
near London. The separate spines are nine in number, and 


178 


TINKER. 


each of them has a small triangular iin membrane at its 
posterior base; all of them are erectile at the pleasure of the 
fish, and when erected it is seen that they are not seated 
exactly on the median line of the back, but on two lines, 
each removed, almost imperceptibly, to the right and left of 
a median line; on one line there are five spines, on the other 
four, and they arc seated alternately. Every spine, moreover, 
on the right line has a most decided inclination to the right, 
and every spine on the left line to the left, so that the series 
are well represented by the teeth of a saw recently set, when 
they are alternately and purposely bent to the right and left. 
The earinated scales on the sides of the tail, which Cuvier 
makes a character of O. pungitius, are entirely wanting. The 
colour is very uniform, as compared with that of our ordinary 
Sticklebacks; it is a somewhat metallic yellow green on the 
back, gradually becoming paler, and almost white on the belly, 
the whole being irrorated with minute black dots; the fins are 
very pale, almost colourless. The male resembles the female 
until the month of March, when he begins to assume his 
nuptial livery: the median line of the breast and belly then 
becomes black, a colour which day by day extends on either 
side until all the lower parts of the fish become of the most 
intense velvety black; this eventually extends almost over the 
whole body, the back only retaining slight indications of the 
normal colouring. 

It is a fearless and ferocious little fish, instantly reconciled 
to captivity, and attacking with fury any prior inhabitant of 
the vessel in which it is placed. It will frequently seize a 
fellow-prisoner by the gill, the tail, or a fin, and retain its 
grip with the firnmess of a bull-dog; in the same way it will 
instantly seize a worm when presented to it, and allow itself 
to be drawn out of the water without relinquishing its hold. 
The females become very much distended with ova, and deposit 
them simultaneously; they are veiy large, generally eight or 
ten in number, and are immediately devoured if found by 
fishes of the same or other species; its nest is not known to 
me. Unlike other species of Gasterosteus it will not exist 
when confined in salt-water, however diluted. Mr. Newman’s 
doubts of the identity of this species, arising from the difference 
of colour, would have ceased if he had recollected how 


TINKEK. 


179 


strongly many fishes, and this family in particular, are disposed 
to assume their tints from the naUire of the ground in which 
they live, a fact well known to fishermen, and Ovid, in ancient 
times, when he says of another inhabitant of the waters, 
(the Polypus) — 

“Sub lege loce mutatque colorem;” 

“The place’s law compels to change its tints.” 

Nor is the presence of a ridge or scales near the tail a surer 
mark of the distinction of species, for among the three-spined 
species, this ridge, naked or plated, is found to occur indis- 
criminately. 

With regard to the number of dorsal spines, above referred 
to, Nilsson says that they are about ten in number; that this 
fish is about an inch and a half or two inches in length, which 
shews it larger than with us; and that it is common in all the 
waters of Scandinavia. The three-spined species, he says, is 
even found within the arctic circle. 


180 


FIFTEEN-SPINED STICKLEBACK. 


SEA adder; 


Confounding it mth the Pipefishes or Syngnathi, to which it bears some 
resemblance in shape, and especially in the form of its snout and the 
angles of its body. Bismore in Scotland. 

Amleatus marinus major, Jonston ; Tab. 47, but I find no description. 


WiLLononBY; p. 340, and Appendix, p. 23, 
Tab. X, 13. It is remarkable thav Wil- 
loughby had never seen this common fish, 
and his figure at last was taken from a 
dry specimen in the Museum of the Royal 
Society. 


LinnjExts. Biocn; pi. 63, f. 1. 
Douqtar’s Plates, p. 45. Lacepede. 
Jentks; Manual, p. 351. 

Takrell; Br. Pishes, vol. i, p. 101. 
Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 219. 



II 

Spinaclda vulgaris, 


Gtfntiiee; Cat. of Br. Museum, vol. i, p. 7. 


This fish never enters fresh-water, hut it is well known on 
all the coasts of the United Kingdom, from the extreme north 
of Scotland to the Land’s End, in Cornwall; and within a 
few years it has drawn to itself special notice from its having 
been discovered to be in the habit of forming a nest for the 
security of its young, and for watching over their safety in 
it with much care, to the time when they become excluded, 
and capable of taking care of themselves among the other 
inhabitants of the waves; a discovery which solicited the more 
attention, that it was made, or at least published, before a 
similar proceeding had come to light in the habits of one or 
two more of the species of the same natural family that we 
have aheady spoken of. 

The first obscure notices of this remarkable and hitherto 



XXXVIII 


I 

i 



FIPTEEN-SPINED STICKLEBACK. 


181 


unsuspected proceeding appear to have been entertained in 
Scotland; but the subject was prosecuted with greater care 
and success in Cornwall, by Mr. Richard Q. Couch, who, 
however, underwent the fate of many other discoverers, in 
having the fruit of his researches stolen from him into a 
foreign language without acknowledgment; to be translated 
back into English by one who was ignorant of the fact that 
he was doing no more than bringing into his own country what 
in truth had before been filched away from it. 

The places selected for these nests are usually in harbours 
or some recess near the open sea, where, with the presence of 
the pure water of the ocean, there is shelter from the open 
violence of the waves. Sometimes they hang in pools of the 
rocks, but it is not rare to find them between tidemarks, 
where they are left uncovered by the tide for two or three 
hours. The moisture of the materials appears sufRcient to save 
the grains of spawn fi'om suffering injury by this exposure. 

The method of proceeding in forming these nests appears to 
be that the fish either find growing, or, certainly in some 
instances, collect together some of the softer kinds of green or 
red sea- weeds, and join them with so much of the coralline 
tufts (Janiac) growing on the rock as will serve tlie purpose 
of affording firmness to the structure, and constitute a mass 
five or six inches . long, of a pear-like shape, and about as 
stout as a man’s fist. A thread is employed with much skill 
and patience in binding these materials together; and there is 
no doubt that its substance is obtained from the creatm-e’s 
own body. It much resembles silk, and is elastic. Under a 
good magnifier it appears to be formed of several smaller 
threads glued together, and it hardens into firmness by 
exposure to the water. But there is reason to believe that it 
is not exuded, nor the roe deposited, all at once; for as it 
is passed through the mass with intricacy in various directions, 
the roe appears in little clumps, which are in different degrees 
of development. 

The gi-ains are of large size in proportion to the magnitude 
of the fish, and of a bright amber colour. They are watched 
over by the parent — in every case I believe, by the male— — 
who never long quits his station; but an instance has occurred 
where two fishes have been engaged in attending one nest: 

VOL. I. 2 D 


18 ^ 


FIFTEEN-SPIKED STICKLEBACK. 


and if the guardian is forced to retreat by the receding of 
the tide, he returns as soon as the way is open, and for three 
or four weeks he continues his guard, until the young are 
able of themselves to take their chance in the broad expanse 
of sea. So much is he intent on the principal object of his 
solicitude, that at this time himself may be easily caught; hut 
he resents every interference with the nest; and if the grains 
of ova he exposed to sight, as was done by way of trial, the 
breach was immediately repaired by the labour of dragging 
the materials into a position by which they are again concealed 
and protected. 

A singular instance of constructive skill and patience in the 
formation of its nest, which occurred within my knowledge, is 
deserving of remembrance. The situation selected was the 
loose end of a rope, from which the separated strands hung 
at about a yard from the surface, over a depth of four or 
five fathoms; and to which the materials could only have been 
brought, of course in the mouth of the fish, from the distance 
of about thirty feet. They were formed of the usual aggregation 
of the finer sorts of green and red ore-weed; but they were 
so matted together in the hollow formed by the untwisted 
strands of the rope, that the mass constituted an oblong ball 
of nearly the size of the fist; in which had been deposited 
the scattered assemblages of spawn, and which was bound into 
shape with the thread of animal substance already described, and 
which was passed through and through in various directions, 
while the rope itself formed an outside covering to the whole. 
We can scarcely suppose that such a nest can have been the 
work of more than a couple of fishes, but the grains of 
spawn had grown to almost the size of radish seeds, and in 
collective bulk seemed greatly disproportionate to the size of 
the parent, and only to be explained by the well-known fact, 
that the ova of fishes generally obtain an increase of bulk by 
the absorption of water after exclusion; which fluid may be 
supposed to exert considerable influence on the further de- 
velopment of the young. The embryo of this fish, as is 
believed to be the case with many others, is not found to 
bear a close resemblance to the parent, and, in fact, may be 
said to pass through a decided metamorphosis in the course 
of its final development. 


PIFTEEN-SPINEll STICKLEBACK. 


183 


A nest selected for observation had its outer case formed of 
green sea-weeds, within which were short pieces of brown 
weeds; and, contrary to the usual custom, it was watched 
by a couple of these fishes. At the precise time of cjuitting 
itie egg, the young were placed under a magnifier of moderate 
power, when it was observed, that instead of a long protruded 
snout, the form of the head was round and blunt, the pec- 
toral fins were large, and a dorsal fin passed along the greater 
part of the back to be united to the caudal fin, from which 
again it advanced to form an anal fin. In some examples 
this union was by an uninterrupted border, but in others 
there was a notch at the place where the dorsal and anal 
fins came together. The belly was protuberant, and in some 
the ovum was still visibly attached to the body; and as the part 
of union was diaphanous, globules could be seen, that had 
passed from the egg to the intestine. No ventral fins could 
be perceived, which is less a matter of surprise that it has 
been observed in other instances — these organs are the last 
that go through the process of development. The truly apodal 
fishes (such as are always without ventral fins, as the Conger,) 
are, in fact, in a condition of arrested development in this 
particular. How widely dififcrcnt is this form from that of the 
parent! and yet, when half an inch in length, the lineaments 
are perfect. These little newly-born fishes were active and 
voracious, for they eagerly attacked such of their feUows as 
fell dead to the bottom of the vessel in which they were 
confined. 

This species is capable of great activity, and when^ m cap - 
tivity I have known it to throw itself over the brim of a 
vessel where the water was three inches beloiv it. It feeds 
on crustaceous animals, and indeed on any animal substance 
it is able to swallow; and I have known it to attack and 
partially devour an eel of three inches in length, which, 
however, it was compelled finally to reject. 

The usual length is about six inches; the head compressed 
at the sides, wide and flat on the top, lengthened before the 
eyes, which are moderately large and brilliant. Under jaw 
the longest; both have teeth; the lips fleshy; tongue far back 
in the gullet. Nostrils midway between the snout and eyes, 
and appearing to exert a sensitive action when the fish is at 


184 


FIFTEEN-SPINE D STICKLEBACK. 


liberty. The gill-covers with large plates; the membrane with 
three rays. The body lengthened, growing slender as it 
approaches the tail, and depressed. The lateral line raised into 
a ridge of shaip overlapping plates, forty in number, but 
probably liable to variation. The belly bordered with a 
prominent bony rim; vent at the middle of the body. Dorsal 
and anal fins rounded, at the beginning of the posterior half 
of the body, and opposite each other. Between the head and 
the dorsal fin is a row of fifteen spines, each of them edged 
on the hinder part with a slight membrane. Pectoral fins 
rather large, reaching backward to the tenth dorsal spine. 
Ventrals opposite the extremity of the pectorals, placed apart, 
with three rays, the first strong and hooked. A strong spine 
before the anal fin. The tail wide and round. The colour 
liable to vary; in some reddish brown on the back, first rays 
of the dorsal fins, and tail; in others deep green; and in 
some instances C^s indeed, in many other fishes) quickly 
chansrinsc under the influence of terror. The cheeks and sides 
are often golden yellow, lighter on the belly. Fin rays — 
pectoral nine, ventral three, dorsal seven, anal eight, caudal 
twelve. 



A— Head of Fifteen-spined Stickleback. B — Egg of ditto, magnified. 

0— Eggs, natural ske. 




185 


PEECA. 


The body compressed, rather deep, covered with firmly-fixed scales. 
First gill-cover with a serrated edge, on the second a spine. Jaws 
and roof of the mouth with numerous fine and slender teeth. 
Two separate dorsal fins, the first with spinous rays. These fishes, 
and several of the following genera, separated for eonvenicncy from 
the original genus Percd as constituted by Linnmus, are what that 
author named thoracic fishes, because their ventral fins are placed 
below the pectorals. 


PERCH. 


Terca major, 

Fearch, 

(( 

Perea fiuviatilis, 

ft ft 

ft ft 

ft ff 

La Perseqtie Perche, 


JONSTON; Titul, 3, C. 1. 

IzAAC Wamon’s Angler. 

Willoughby; p. 291, Tab. S. 13. 

LinnjEus and Cuviek. Bloch ; pi. 52. 
Guntheb’s Oat. of Br. Museum, vol. i, p. 58. 
Eleming; British Animals, p. 212. 

Jbnyns; Manual, p. 330. 

Yarkell; British Fishes, vol. i, p. 1. 
Lacepedb. 


The Perch is one of our best-known river fish, and is 
generally distributed over the kingdom; but it is with some 
exceptions, for it is not found in Scotland north of the 
Forth, except where it has been introduced, and it is not a 
native of Cornwall, although it has been conveyed thither 
within the present (nineteenth) century, and in the few places 
where it is known it thrives well. This fish, indeed, is capable 
of living out of water for a considerable time under favourable 
circumstances, and has been known to have been carried 
without injury a distance of forty miles, enclosed in wetted 
moss. It is said to be a custom in some parts of Germany, 
to carry this fish alive to market, and if not sold, to return 
it to its native element for another opportunity, as was 


186 


PERCH. 


formerly the case in England with the Pike and other fishes. 

The Perch prefers lakes and the deeper and less rapid 
pools of rivers, where they herd together in companies in the 
winter; and it is probably for want of such accommodation 
that it is not naturally an inhabitant of the extreme north 
or west of Britain. But when the warmth of spring begins 
to be felt it becomes more active, and passes into the more 
rapid parts of the stream; where the angler employs his baits 
with great success, for this fish feeds eagerly on almost every 
animal it is able to swallow. Worms, the larvee of insects, 
young fishes newly struggling into life, and even the smaller 
newts and frogs, are indiscriminately devoured, and form 
therefore successful baits for taking this fish. It will spring 
out of the water to catch some sorts of fl.ies; but in grappling 
with the more formidable Sticklebacks, it sometimes suffers the 
injury, which, under like circumstances, itself iirflicts upon the 
Pike. The formidable spines of the back and ventral fins 
are driven into the membrane of the mouth, and cause such 
fretting ulcerations as to lead to its destruction. It has been 
said that from dread of these firm and piercing dorsal spines 
the Pike, however voracious, will shrunk from attacking the 
Perch; but that it is not always thus cautious is shewn by 
an accident recorded in the following verses, where it had 
_ seized a very large Perch, after the latter had taken the 
angler’s hook. The writer, comparing this Perch to a smaller 
one, says — 

Oh, had you seen, in Ely’s merry isle 
His bulky brother which a Cyclops strook 
With hempen cable and rough hammer’d hook; 

Long tugg’d the brawny blacksmith at his game. 

At last encumber’d with huge load it came. 

Half buried in a Pike’s enormous maw. 

Its finny spears fast wedged into bis jaw. 

Scarce eight fall pounds — 

Angler, 1758. 

A further character of these roving companies is referred to 
in the succeeding verses: — 

Perch, like the Tartar clans, in troops remove, 

And urged by famine or by pleasure rove. 

But if one prisoner, as in war, you seize. 

You’ll prosper, master of the camp with ease; 

Por, like the wicked, unalarmed they view 
Their fellows perish, and their path pursue. 


PERCH. 


187 


According to Professor Owen, tlie milt and roe are single 
in tlie different sexes. According to several authors it does 
not breed until the third year of its age, and in spawning it 
seeks for some pointed piece of wood, against which it presses 
the vent; and when some of the spawn has become attached 
to this substance, it moves in different directions, so as to 
draw out the ova, which are enveloped in a cord of tough 
mucus, much like that of the common toad. The quantity of 
spawn is often large, and has been known to weigh one fourth 
part of the whole weight of the fish; but the bulk becomes 
much increased after it is shed, by the absorption of water 
into its substance. 

It is much valued for the table, and the skin has been 
employed in the place of glue, in the manner described by 
Linnffius, “Tachesis Lapponica:” — “The glue used by the 
Laplanders for joining the two portions of different woods of 
which their bows are made, is prepared from the Common 
Perch in the following manner: — Some of the largest of this 
fish being flayed, the skins are first dried, and afterwards 
soaked in a small quantity of cold water, so that the scales 
can be rubbed off. Four or five of these skins being wrapped 
irp together in a bladder, or in a piece of birch bark, so 
that no water can get at them, are set on the fire in a pot 
of water to bod, a stone being laid over the pot to keep in 
the heat. The skins thus prepared make a very strong glue,* 
insomuch that the articles joined with it will never separate 
again. A bandage is tied round the bow while making, to 
hold the two parts more firmly together.” 

The usual size of a full-grown Perch is from nine or ten 
inches to a foot in length; but examples are on record which 
have much exceeded these dimensions. TVilloughby says that 
he had seen one which measured fifteen inches; and Izaac IValton 
mentions an instance which came to his knowledge, where it 
measured nearly two feet; and Hawkins, in his Notes to the 
“Complete Angler,” refers to one twenty-nine inches in length. 
The form of the body is compressed and deep; and the outline 
rises in an arched direction from the mouth to a little in advance 
of the first dorsal fin. The mouth is terminal, and the jaws 
about equal; teeth slender and numerous in the jaws, and over 
the palate. The body and part of the cheeks covered with 


188 


perch. 


small but firmly-attacbed scales. Eyes large; nostrils, as in all 
this family of fishes, double, and between the eyes and point 
of the upper jaw. The first gill-cover (preoperculum) finely 
serrated ; the hurdmost furnished with a flattened spine. Eatei al 
line passing along nearer the back. The first dorsal fin rounded 
and well developed, with firm and prickly rays, of which the 
fourth and fifth are commonly the longest; the second dorsal 
near the first, and opposite the anal; the latter with two firm 
rays at its commencement. Tail concave. The colours are lively, 
but subject to variation. The back a rich brown, sometimes 
greenish; cheeks and sides yellow, the beUy white. A variable 
number of broad bands of the colour of the back pass round 
the sides. The first dorsal fin flesh-coloured at the base, bluish 
near the margin; the first and last borders dark, almost black. 
Pectoral fins pale; the ventrals, second dorsal, anal, and tail 
red. Fin rays — first dorsal fourteen, second dorsal fourteen, 
pectoral twelve, ventral one to five, anal two to five, caudal 
eighteen. 






■ 

I 


bass. 


BASS. 


Lupus, 

Perea labrax, 

Bass, 

<( 

Lahrax lujpust 


« 


(( 

« 


4« 


(f 


JoNSioN; c. 2, t. 23, 1 3. 

Willougiiuy; p. 271, tab. r. 1. 

Link.j:us. 

UOHOVAN; pi. 43. lllSSO; p. 213. 

Tlemisg; Br. Animals, p. 213. 

OuviEE, wlio separates this fish into a new 
genus, because its tongue is rough, which 
that organ in the genus Perea is not. 
Jenyns; Manual, p. 331. 

Yakrell; Br. Fishes, v. 1, p- 8. 

Gu:NTaEB; Catalogue of Fishes in the Br. 
Museum, vol. i, p- 63. 


The Bass was known to the Romans by the name of Lupus, 
or the Wolf; a designation which has been supposed expressive 
of its great voracity. But it appears to me that the word des- 
cribes the manner in which it deals with its prey rather than 
merely the eagerness with which it pursues it. Let the weathei 
he stormy and the water turbid, and the Bass of largest size 
wdl hunt along the shore, and even m very shallow J^ter for 
whatever it can find, but especially for onisci and other crus- 

« sucl. circa— of- <1-™ 

from their hitUns-placcr. ia crevice, of the rock,. J? Mermen 

who emplo, hand lines from the shore, me aware ol th.s, . 

choose this lime, at the Sood tide rather than “ ' 

most successful fishery. It they are able from 

the wa«r to discern the hottom, they do 

to take the hook. At other seasons the Bass will assume 

“at— some sheltering rock, and there 
nassing prey. Suddenly it rushes on its v ctim, and aga 
” with it to its former shelter to devour .It remanung sull 
near the same haunt until the appetite is satisfied, or its eipectation 

opinion of several ancient anthers this 11, h displays 

2 IL 

YOL. 1. 


190 


BASS. 


but little sagacity in the way in which it gets itself into 
situations of danger, but much of that guality in extricating 
itself from the snares in which it is entangled. To this purport 
Pliny and iElian express in prose what Oyid and Oppian give 
in verse: — that when encompassed with a net, it scoops out 
with its tail a furrow in the sand, and there lies hid while the 
net passes over it. 

In like extremity the greedy toils, 

With arts more exquisite the Bass beguiles: 

Low he descends when powerful fear commands, 

And scoops with labotrrmg fins the furrow’d sands; 

Lodged in that cave expected fate derides. 

While o’er his back the leaded foot-rope slides. 

Fisher’" "u observe that they often deliver themselves from 
the line by cutting away the hook; and they suppose it to be 
done by means of the serrated cutting edge of the gill-cover. 
But it is more probable that it is effected by drawing the line 
across the teeth; which are numerous and capable of acting 
like a file or rasp. Oppian, in borrowing perhaps from Ovid, 
gives also another and less likely explanation of their way of 
escape : — 

“The crafty Bass, whene’er they conscious feel 
Deep in their jaws infix’d the barbed steel. 

Writhing with restive fury backward bound. 

The hook dismissing through the widen’d wound.” 

The food of the Bass is the smaller fishes, shrimps and other 
crustaceous animals, and sea-weeds; and they readily take an 
offered bait. They are most frequently caught in summer and 
autumn, when many circumstances combine to bring them within 
reach of the fisherman; but they are rarely seen in winter. 
It has been said that they breed twice in the year; but it is 
doubtful whether with us winter is one of these seasons. 
The young are seen in harbours and at the mouths of the 
larger rivers in considerable numbers; but when full-grown 
they become solitary, and prowl along the coast; for they do 
not commonly seek the deep water; and although capable of 
living in fresh-water, do not pass into it in preference. They 
are widely distributed, but are by much the most abundant in 
the southern counties of England and Ireland. They have 
been found in the Firth of Forth, but I believe no further 


BASS. 


191 


north in Scotland. Belon says he found it in the Eed Sea. 
(Observations, etc., L. 2 , c. 67.) 

The Bass is in esteem for the table with us; but it was 
regarded much more highly, and as among the principal of 
their dainties, by the luxurious* Eomans of the Empire; who 
chose to set the highest value on such as were caught in a 
recognised district of the Tiber*, and which those who prided 
themselves on their exrjuisite taste professed to be easily able 
to recognise. Bliny only says that they were the best which 
were caught in rivers; but from Horace we learn that they 
must be of small size, and taken precisely between the two 
bridges of the city, neither above nor far below. (Satires, 
b. 2 s. 2 , where it is to be observed that the translators into 
English have chosen to render the word Lupus by the English 
word Pike, to which fish the Lupus does not answer in any 
particular.) The favoured fish was known by its pale colour, 
and especially by its white and woolly flesh; and a story is 
handed down to us by Columella, of the affected horror ex- 
pressed by one of these fashionable sensualists at a table, where 
it happened that a Bass not of the right sort was set before 
him. Having taken a portion into his mouth, he threw it back 
in apparent disgust, and exclaimed, “1 thought it was fish 
you had set before me.” But their ancestors could not have 
been so fastidious; for Columella, (de re rustica, b. 8, c. 16,) 
tells us, that from ancient times these fish had been kept in 
fresh-water ponds, where they bred freely. 

Yet it was the fish preferred by the epicure that ought to 
have excited disgust; for the fiivoui'ite station was indebted for 
its excellency to the great cloaca, or principal drain of the city; 
and as Willoughby observes, it was owing to their being fed 
with matters that were discharged from it, that they had ob- 
tained the colour and taste which elevated them into reputation. 
A similar observation has been made in modem times. 

' Willoughby, and other writers who had seen this fish chiefly 
in Italy, "describe the young as marked with dark spots, which 
disappear in advanced growth; and Gesner’s figure shews it 
similarly spotted; but no such marks appear in them in our 
own country. The adult fish reach a considerable bulk; but 
one of fifteen pounds is considered large. Yet I have been 
informed of several that weighed twenty pounds, and one has 


193 


BASS. 


been named to me that reached twenty-nine pounds.^ I myself 
measured an example that was in length two feet nine inches, 
but its weight was not in proj)ortiou to its length. Ihe head 
and body are compressed, and the latter not so deep as in the 
generality of this family of Perch-like fishes; but muscular 
and strong; covered firmly with scales, as is also the first 
gill-cover. Jaws and palate furnished with numerous small 
teeth; the tongue as if cut short at its extremity. Anterior 
gill-cover serrated, but on the lower border this sometimes 
becomes obscure. The hindmost gill-cover havmg two blunt 
spines, and another, at the origin of the lateral line. Eyes of 
moderate size. Lateral line slightly descending, and then 
straight. Dorsal fins two, in a depression on the back; the 
first with strong spinous rays, of which the first, and sometimes 
also the second, are short. Anal fin slightly behind the second 
dorsal. Tail concave. Colour a bluish grey on the back, lighter 
on the sides, white below. First dorsal nine, second dorsal 
thirteen, pectoral sixteen, ventral six, anal fourteen, caudal 
seventeen, the first ray spinous. 





193 


ASPEO. 

lu dividing the extensive family of Linnajan Perches, Cuvier forms 
the genus ^spvo, which, with a somewhat elongated body, has the two 
dorsal fins separate, the ventrals broad, the teeth very small and thickly 
set, head depressed. The teeth are on the palatine bones, but not on 
the tongue. 


RUFF. 


POPE. JACK RUFE. 


Perea jliiviatilis minor, and Sclvrollus, 
“ cernua, 

ft ft 

ft ft 

Gernua fluviatilis, Aspredo, Ituffa, 

“ fliwiatilis, 

Acerma vulgaris, 

a « 


JONSTON. 

LiNN*tfs. Blocu; ph 53. 
Dojjovan; pi. 39. 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 334. 
■WiLLOUGirBY; p. 331, tabi x. 14. 
Flehing; Br. Animals, p. 212. 
Cuvier. Guhtiier; Catalogue 
Br. Museum, vol. i, p. 72. 
Yabrell; British Pishes, vol. i, 
p. 17. 


This little fish is less widely distributed than the Perch, 
but it is common in the rivers of the midland counties of 
England, although not found in Cornwall and Devon, m 
Scotland, or the Isle of Wight. It is not mentioned by Mr. 
Thompson among the fishes of Ireland; but by Linnaeus and 
other continental writers it is said to inhabit the lakes of (at 
least the northern parts of) Europe. According to Professor 
Nilsson it is frequently met with in the middle and northern 
waters of Scandinavia, but is rare in the south. It is lively in 
its motions, and chiefly frequents those portions of the river that 
are rocky or strewed with stones and sand. In other respects 
it has much the same habits as the Perch, and is angled for 


194 


RUFI*. 


with the same halts. The usual time of spawning is the 
spring, at which time the roe is shed in large quantity at a 
good depth in the water, on sandy ground. By some this fish 
is esteemed for the table. 

It rarely exceeds three or four inches in length. The out- 
line of its shape rises from the snout to the beginning of the 
dorsal fin, and the body becomes more slender as it approaches 
the tail, which organ is large and forked. The eyes are 
large, and placed high in the cheeks; front of the head 
round and blunt; under jaw a little the shortest; teeth nu- 
merous and fine. Cheeks with pits; border of the anterior 
gill-cover with spines, and a longer spine on the hinder gill- 
cover. The body covered with scales, which are rough to the 
touch from the nature of the edge of each of them; hence 
the name of the fish. Lateral line nearer the back. Dorsal 
fin waved, but undivided, the fourth ray the longest, the 
breadth growing narrower at the end of the spinous portion, 
and again expanding as it approaches its termination. Anal 
fin rather small, ending opposite the termination of the dorsal. 
Pectoral round; ventrals large, thoracic. The colours vary 
according to the nature of the river, from a greenish tint on 
the back to a rich yellowish brown, lighter or whitish below, 
and varied with scattered spots; fins spotted or with bars of 
brown; tints of yellow on the sides. 





XLII 




195 


SEEEANUS. 


This genus has a single dorsal fin, although two classes of rays 
support its two divisions. Bays of the gill membrane seven m 
number. Eirst gill-cover serrated, the hindmost with one or more 
points or spines. Covering of the jaws smooth. 


CO^^BER. 

SMOOTH SEURANXTS. 


Serranus GdbriUn, 

ii ‘‘ 

it « 

Chann'e, 

Channa, 

Perea Cahrilla, 
JPolocentre serran, 
Perea cTiannus, 


CeviEB. 

Yahuell; Br. Fishes, vol. i, p. H. 
Guhtheh; Cat. Br. Museum, vol, i. p. 106. 
JouSTON; Artioulus 8. 

WlllOUGlIBY, p. 327. 

LiknjEUS. Jenyns; Manual, p. 332. 

Eisso. 

Loudon’s Mag. Mat. Hist., vol. v, p. 20. 


This is a common fish in the west of the kingdom, and 
probably also along the south coast of Ireland; but it was 
long overlooked by naturalists, and supposed to be confined 
to L Mediterranean, where it appears to have been con- 
founded, under the name of Sea Perch, with anther species 
which it much resembles both in appearance and habits the 
Serranus scriba, a species that has not been found in Bri am 
The Comber usually keeps in rocky ground at a small dis 
tance from land, and is well known to fishermen who often 
find it in their wicker crab-pots, which it enters for the sake 
of the baits that are hung up to entice the crabs and lobsters; 
but the result is that they become the bait they sought to 
devour They are seldom brought to the market, and when 
caught’ on the line are usually converted into bait for other 


196 


COMBER. 


fish; for, although wholesome, and even delicate for the table, 
their inferior size causes them to be little valued. Their usual 
food appears to be the smaller crustacean animals and small 
fishes; but I have found Ophiurm (Slender Snake Star-fishes) 
and encrusting corrallines (Lepralise) 'n their stomach. 

A supposition of ancient date was, that the males and 
females of this species were united in one, or were hermaph- 
rodites; but although the structure of the ovaries offers some 
peculiarities, there is reason to believe that the sexes are 
distinct as in other fishes. Professor Owen was not able to 
discover anything but the grains of spawn in these organs, 
as they were sent to him for examination with a microscope; 
and I have no doubt of having myself distinctly seen the 
existence of a separate milt. There is, however, some peculiarity 
in these organs, for at that portion of the ovary where it 
enters the duct that conveys the spawn or milt, there is a 
small bag-like sac, and at the outlet of the passage from 
whence the roe is discharged, an organ, which, under ordi- 
nary circumstances, has its orifice turned inward; but on 
pressing the body the direction of the part is reversed and 
the outlet is rendered capable of conveying the discharge to 
the distance of half an inch. When the pressure is removed 
this organ resumes a twisted shape, and returns to its situation 
within the body. Late in the spring and in the summer I 
have found the spawn running freely from one ovary, and 
nearly as much advanced in the other, thus shewing that the 
process is not ended within a very small duration. 

This fish also obtained notice in ancient times, from the 
fact that its death was always attended with a spasm which 
caused its fins to stand erect and its mouth to be widely 
open. I have never met with more than a single instance in 
which the contrary to this was the case, and from this pecu- 
liarity it was that among the Greeks it obtained the name of 
Chance and Channos, or the Gaper. Some writers indeed are 
persuaded that this habit of gaping is natural to it at all 
times, and that it is produced by the structure of the jaws; 
but there is no doubt that this latter supposition is built on 
a mistake, and that when alive the mouth is closed as in 
other fishes. 

In reference to this fish and the S. scriba, it may create 


COMBER. 


197 


some amusement to the reader, if there be introduced to him 
a little sprinkling of rrhat was known as science in the middle 
ages, as handed down by one of the then shining lights of the 
world. Speaking of the medical virtues of some creatures, 
Albertus Magnus says of the Foca, which is the Fuka, Phykis, 
or Phykos, (not Phokos or Phokee,) of Gesner,— the Sea 
Perch, — that it is a well-known fish, called by the Chaldeans 
Daulubur, and by the Greeks Labor. Take its tongue and a 
small portion of its heart, and infuse them in water, and the 
mixture thus made will cause a multitude of fishes to gather 
together. Place the same under your arm, and if you have 
a °trial at law it will make the judge your friend. 

largest size of this fish is about ten inches long , the 
body compressed, deep. Gill-covers and body covered with 
ciliated scales, which adhere firmly. Under jaw longestj teeth 
in both, and in the palate, numerous, irregular, sharp, and 
incurved; the tongue small and loose. Eyes high in the 
head. First plate of the gill-covers with the border serrated, 
the second with two (in the female one) obscure spines, 
scarcely to be distinguished, except in shape, from the scales. 
Gill membrane with seven rays, curved, the uppermost broad. 
The dorsal fin begins opposite the ventrals, the first portion 
having spinous rays, the second, which passes to near the tail, 
expanded, with soft rays; anal fin opposite the second portion 
of the dorsal. Pectoral fins longer and more pointed than in 
most of this family of fishes. Tail a little concave. Lateral 
line nearer the back. Colour of the back a rich brown, in 
many examples throwing off bands which pass to the belly. 
The sides a pale red, saffron-coloured, or yellow, usually 
fainter below. Two or three waved parallel whitish or faint 
blue lines pass along the sides from head to tail, except that 
the lowest ends near the posterior border of the anal fin. On 
the sill-cover are several faint blue stripes running obliquely 
downward and backward. The fins are striped lengthwise, 
with red and yellow; the tail often mottled or striped with 
the same colours. Pectorals and ventrals yellow. 

Fin rays — dorsal ten and fourteen, pectoral fifteen, ventral six, 
anal two and seven, caudal seventeen. 


198 


DUSKY PERCH. 


Serranus gi"ns, 

<( (t 

tt it 


Holocenirus Me.rou, 
Perea rohusta, 
Perea gigas, 


CtTVIEK. 

Yahbell; Br. FisBes, vol. i, p. 14. 
Gu:NinEK; Cat. of Br. Museum, vol. i, 
p. 132. 

Lacepebe. E:sso. 

Loudon’s Mag. Nat. Hist., vol. v, p. 21. 
Jenyns; Manual, p. 333. 


This, ivhich, as its scientific name implies, is among the 
largest of the species of this family, and is not uncommon in 
the Mediterranean, appears to have been overlooked by natu- 
ralists until very recent times, and even yet its peculiar habits 
have been but little examined. E.isso tells us only that it 
comes to the neighbourhood of Nice in summer and autumn. 
It appears that the south part of the coast of Cornwall is the 
north boundary of its wanderings, as it is of several other 
fishes of the west portion of the Mediterranean; but even 
there it is found but rarely, and no more than three or 
four examples have fallen within the notice of naturalists. 
I'he first of these was taken near Polperro with a line, and 
from it our figure and description were obtained. I learn 
from W. P. Cocks, Esq., that two others have been brought 
into Falmouth, and one of these was presented by him to the 
collection of the British Museum. One, if not more, has 
been observed at Penzance, but of its habits on our coasts 
we have nothing to report. 

At first view this fish has more the appearance of belonging 
to the genus Labrus (the Wrass) than to the family of 
Perches; and, in conformity with this, it is said that in 
Spain, where it is well known, its name is the same as that 
of the Wrass; but closer observation corrects the mistake, 
and shews it to be possessed of the proper characters of the 



I 


DUSKY PERCH. 








BXISKY PERCH. 


199 


large family of Perch-like fishes, to which therefore we are 
left to infer that its habits also belong. 

The example described was taken with a hook. It measured 
three feet in length, and was seven inches deep, exclusive of 
the finsj the body thick and solid; the weight sixteen pounds: 
but it is sometimes found much larger. The under jaw 
longest, and both, as well as the palate, with numerous 
slender incurved teeth; a bed of them in front of the lower 
jaw. Lips resembling those of a Codfish; two large open 
nostrils, and a large hole under the projection of the nasal 
bones. First plate of the gill-covers serrated, the second with 
a broad flat spine projecting through the skin and pointing 
backward. The fleshy covering of the gill-covers lengthened 
posteriorly. The body and head covered with large scales. 
Lateral line gently curved. Dorsal fin single, long, expanding 
towards its termination; the first spinous ray short, the two 
last soft rays from one root. Pectorals round; ventrals fastened 
down w'ith a membrane through part of their course; vent 
an inch and a half before the origin of the anal fin. Tail 
round. Colour of the back reddish brown, lighter on the 
belly. Two slightly-marked pale lines on the gill-covers, one 
on each plate, running obliquely downward. 

This fish must sometimes attain an enormous size. A figure 
of the natural size of the head of an example taken at 
Penzance, of which the body unfortunately was destroyed, 
measures one foot four inches from the front of the jaw to 
the hinder portion of the gill-cover, and in depth, immediately 
in front of the dorsal fin, thirteen inches. 


POLYPEIOK. 


A PKUHATED border to tbe first gill-cover, a strongly-ridged spine 
High on tbe second gill-covor, and a rough crest above, with rough- 
ness over the bones of the head. Firm scales over the body, cheeks, 
and mustache. A single dorsal fin, in two portions; the second, with 
the anal fin, much developed. 


STONE BASS. 


Wrechfisli, 

Scorpwna Massiliensis, 
Polyprion cemium, 
Couch’s Serranus, 

<1 « 


Transactions of Linnaean Society, vol. xiv, p. 81. 
Eisso? 

OnviER. 

Tabkell’s British Pishes, vol. i. 

Gckther; Cat. British Museum, vol. i, p. 169. 


It is remarkable that this large and •well-marked fish should 
he among those which have remained unknown to naturalists 
until very recent times; although if the reference made hy 
Dr. Gunther to Kisso, as given above, be correct, it is far from 
being rare in the Mediterranean, where it is held in esteem 
for the table. 

With us, on the south and west coasts of the kingdom, it 
is well knovm to fishermen, and especially as coming under 
extraordinary circumstances. It may not have been noticed for 
several years; but when a mass of wood or fragment of wreck, 
covered with Bernacles, (Lepades,) is driven into our waters 
from the direction of the Atlantic, a considerable number of 
these fishes is often found to accompany it, as if it were a 
special point of attraction to them; for in the most sportive 
manner they gambol round it or over it as it rolls by the 
action of the waves, so that I have known their tails excori- 
ated by rubbing against its substance; appearing to chase each 
other as they feed on the small fishes or crabs which have 


- ■ 



STONE BASS. 




STONE BASS. 


201 


souglit shelter among the suspended bernacles or ■weeds, which 
float in masses in connection with the wood. That they do 
not themsel'vres feed on the bernacles is plain, for I have never 
found them in the stomach; but what cause should lead them 
to come to us under such circumstances, or as is reported to 
have happened in some rare instances, where the bottom of a 
g}xip has been foul from the same cause, appears diflicult to 
he explained; as is also the fact that so large a number 
should be thus attracted, when they are reported in the 
Mediterranean to be of solitary habits. 

So familiar is the opinion that such a mass of floating wreck 
in the northern part of the Atlantic is usually accompanied 
with a multitude of these fishes, that I am informed, when 
it floats within sight of a ship and the weather is favourable, 
a boat is often sent -with the expectation to obtain some of 
them, which is done by piercing them with a spear usually 
employed by sailors for such an object, under the name of 
grayns. So many as thirty-five have been secured at one 
time by a single boat on our own coast. It is agreed on all 
hands that they form an excellent dish at table. 

Of a considerable number of these fishes which have come 
under my observation I have never met with more than one 
example that has exceeded, or even reached the weight of twenty 
pounds. But on the evidence of Cuvier we gather that in 
the Mediterranean they sometimes so vastly exceed this, as to 
be met with of a hundredweight; and it is from this circum- 
stance chiefly that I am led to believe it likely to be a fish 
long lost to science, but kno'wn to the ancients, and men- 
tioned by Oppiaii under the name of Etnaian cantharus, 
an epithet which Scaliger pronounces to have been applied to 
the fish on account of its great size. Tlie particulars leading 
to this supposition are but few, and perhaps obscure, but they 
agree with the characters of the fish as known in its native 
haunts; and although Ovid designates it as 

“Cantliarus ingratus succo,” 

“The Cantharus of unpleasant flavour, 


this may have depended on the mode of cookery, or the 
taste of the eater; and that it was fished for as a valuable 
VOL. I. * ® 


202 


STONE BASS. 


prize, appears as -well from Oppian’s direct assertion, as Ms 
description of the fishermen’s proceedings, which involved no 
little skill and patience. He first made a vessel or chamber 
of -wicker-work with a large door, not unlike the larger 
lobster store-pot now employed to secure these crustaceous 
captives after they have been caught. These he baited with 
roasted crabs or cuttlefish, and placed it near the rocks fre- 
quented by these fishes, -with the door in the side left open. 
The fishes would gradually collect together, but he was in 
no haste to obtain them, and continued to furnish new bait 
as it became devoured by the fish; for his object was, not 
only to secure at one haul a large number, but by feeding 
to fatten them as much as possible. When everything had 
succeeded the door of the trap was closed, and the capture 
secured. 

The example described was eighteen inches long, and six 
deep, exclusive of the fins; body thick and stout. Head bony, 
a high ridge 'on the gill-covers; teeth in jaws and palate 
small, numerous; border of each plate of the gill-covers ser- 
rated; also a large bony serrated plate at the origin of the 
body, above the gill-covers. Scales firm, over the body. 
Dorsal fin long, expanded towards its termination, with eleven 
spinous and twelve soft rays; in the ventral six, the first a 
strong spine, with short spinous processes along its outward 
edge. Anal fin with twelve rays, of which the first three are 
spinous. Tail straight. 




D E N T B X. 


203 


DENTEX, 


CtTviER places tliis genus within his family of Sparoicles _ or Sea 
Bream-like Fishes, which he divides into generic sections, principally 
according to the situation or structure of their tooth; a ground of 
division which might appear slight it it were not that the number 
of species in this family is so great, that confusion must follow if 
some means of separation wore not adopted by which sections of them 
could be kept distinct. The generality of naturalists have been con- 
tent to follow Cuvier in this airangement, and the appearance of the 
onlr' species we know soemed to warrant it; but JDr. Gunther, in his 
“Catalogue of the Fishes of the British Museum,” has placed the 
genus far away from those with which it had been associated, so that 
even the Surmullets are permitted to stand between. Without 
attempting to pronounce an opinion on this last arrangement, regarded 
in the light of a connection or separation of aflSnitics, we are con- 
tent to follow it for a species which is the only one we have of the 
genus, and which can only be considered a stranger on our shores. 

According to Cuvier the genus Dentex is characteriiied hy having 
conical teeth, even on the sides of the jaws, and generally in one 
range; and those immediately in front are lengthened into large hooks. 
The cheeks have scales; the edge of the iirst gill-cover even, or 
without notches. 


DENTEX. 


Four-toothed Spams, 

II “ 

Spams dentex, 
Dentex vulgaris, 

II II 

Spare dente, 

« il 


Jo^’STOJ^; Article 6. 

WiLLonGnnr ; p. 312, tab. v. 3, 

Dentex, Synodon, Synagris. 

LiNsasus. Dosovajj; pi. 73. 

Ouvina. Jkntns; Manual, p. 357. 

Taekeli,; Br. Fishes, vol. i, p. 127. 
Lacepede. Risso; p. 251, and Dentex cetti. ^ 
Gusthee’s Cat. of Br. Museum, vol. i, p. 366. 


This fish is well known through the whole length of the 
Mediterranean, and is distingrtished for its large size as com- 
pared with others with which it has been usual to associate it; 
as well as by its rapid growth, and eagerness in pursuit of 
prey, to which its long and formidable teeth render it a 


204 


DENTEX. 


destructive enemy. It has been classed amongst British fishes 
£-om the circumstance that Donovan, when engaged in publishing 
his “Natural History of British Fishes,” had the good fortune 
to obtain a specimen which had been caught near Hastings, 
and of which he has given a characteristic figure. To the 
present time this has been the only record of its having 
wandered so far to the north as our coasts; and therefore it 
is with pleasure I am able to report the occurrence of two 
other examples, for the knowledge of which we are indebted 
to the vigilance of W. P. Cocks, Esq^., of Falmouth. 

Eisso appears to convey the impression that in its native 
climes it is common only for two or three months in summer; 
and the rarity of its occurrence with us shews how little it is 
accustomed to wander, at least northward, from its usual 
haunts. Willoughby found it in the market both at Borne 
and Venice. 

We obtain our figure of the conspicuous front teeth of this 
fish from a preserved skin in the British Museum; but never- 
having had a recent example to refer to, I prefer to copy the 
description from the “Icthyologie” of Bisso, coupled with the 
“History of Fishes” by WiUoughby, both of these having- 
been derived from examination of recent specimens; but I am 
assisted further by notes from observations made on the last- 
named British examples by William P. Cocks, Esq. 

The Cornish specimen, fii'St referred to, was two feet eight 
inches and a half in length, five inches in breadth, and between 
seven and eight inches in depth, and was purchased in the 
market at Falmouth by J. Vigors, Esq., in November, 1846. 
The second, which came to the same mai-ket in August, 1851, 
was still larger, and measured four feet eight inches in length, 
and therefore probably was an old fish of the full size it evar 
reaches, the four long, conicaT and projecting front teeth 
being much worn and discoloured. Du Hamel is quoted as 
having known it to weigh thirty-eight pounds, and Bisso gives 
about forty inches as the usual length. In its general aspect 
it bears a resemblance to the Becker or Common Sea Bream, 
but the proportions are described as rather longer and more 
solid. The back is also elevated and thinner, and the lower 
jaw rather longer The teeth are in a single row, and the 
front teeth so prominent as to afford a distinctive character 


DENTEX. 


205 


to the species, and even genus. The head is flat on the top, 
and the eyes high on the cheek. Scales on the body and 
gill-covers large. The lateral line passes nearer the back, and 
descends towards the tail. Pectoral fin long and pointed; tad. 
concave; dorsal fin a little expanded at its end; anal fin 
rather short. 

In regard to colour Risso represents it as beautifully varied, 
and in this he is supported by Wdloughhy. He says the 
general hue is silvery, interchanged on the hack with light 
blue, and having blue spots on the sides. In front of the 
head there are waves of golden yellow, sdver, and amethyst; 
the eyes blue, with a golden iris. The dorsal fin a bluish 
yellow; pectorals reddish; caudal a fainter red. Willoughby 
describes the hack as green or yellow, in the large examples 
inclining to purple, dotted over with clouds of blue and dark, 
the colour extending to the sides. At the roots of the hind- 
most rays of the dorsal fin a black spot, as there is also at 
the origin of the pectoral fin. Ventral fins yellow. 

A large example seen by Willoughby was red all over, 
with a shade of purple; but the specimen represented by 
Donovan, which we have figured, is of a more subdued colour 
than is described above, as indeed might be expected from the 
more cloudy skies and lower temperature of the water of our 
more northern regions; for, as we have had repeated opportu- 
nities of remarking, such fishes as wander to us from the 
Mediterranean, are usually destitute of the brilliant tints which 
adorn them in their native seas. 

The fin rays arc differently numbered by difihrent writers; 
but we give them as collected from Risso: — Dorsal eleven 
spinous and twelve soft; anal three spinous and eight soft; 
ventral one spinous and five soft; pectoral fourteen, caudal 
eighteen. 



yront Teeth of Dentex, 


206 


MJ5RNA. 

The body compressed and covered with, scales; the upper jaw 
capable of being extended and drawn backward by moans ot a process 
of bone, which passes upward between the eyes. In consequence of 
this siriicture, the mouth, which when closed looks small, is capable 
of assuming a wide gape. Teeth in the jaws very tine, in a narrow 
band, and also a like bund lengthwise on the middle of the palate 
(vomer.) 


MENDOLE. 


CACKAKEL. 


Mmna, 

<( 

Spams mmna, 
Mcena vulgaris, 

La Spare Menclole, 

if ii 


JoNSTOK; Articulus 21. 

WiLuousHBT; p. 318, tab. v. 8. 

LIHH.EUS, 

CnviEK. 

Lacepedb. Kisso; p. 239. 

GrUNTUEE’s Oat. of Br. Museum, p. 386. 


This is a common fish in the Mediterranean, and in many 
places is found in great abundance, especially in the neigh- 
bourhood of Venice; but it has very rarely been met wdth 
in any part of the Atlantic, and it becomes therefore the 
more remarkable that it should have been found in the British 
Island. I am indebted for the information of such an occur- 
rence to William B. Cocks, Esq., from whom I learn that a 
single example was caught at St. Mawes, within the harbour 
of Falmouth, in a net, in which were also enclosed some 
Grey Mullets. Unfortunately no figure appears to have been 
taken of tliis only English specimen; but the description 
presently to be given, which I owe to the kindness of Mr. 
Cocks, will leave no doubt that he is correct in his appro- 
priation of the name. 

In its native waters the Mendole is an exceedingly prolific 


t %'* 








I 

r 


I 

K 

t' > 

- 

r;,-.. 
= 1 .• 
i '■" 

h 

f 


(■ 


I ■•■* 


I 


'ir 





H 

O 

P 

z 

w 

a 


XLVI 



MENDOLE. 


207 


fish, and usually keeps near the land in places where sea- 
weeds abound, feeding on them, as well as enjoying their 
shelter, but not refusing to take a bait. Oppian says — 

“Close to green shores the watery natives feed, 

That hide in wrack and bite the spiry weed. 

Such food the Cackercls and the Groats approve.’’ 

They were never held in reputation for the table, and 
anciently were considered as food only for the lower orders 
of society. Martial terms them “inutiles msenas,” worthless 
Mendoles; and another poet, describing a poor dinner-hunter, 
represents him as disappointed in his search, and then returning 
to satisfy his hunger on these fishes. Hence it was a proverb 
at Rome that they only were indifFerent to the pleasure of the 
table who would as soon dine on a Mendole as a Sturgeon; 
yet our countryman, Willoughby, represents them as agreeable 
food: but the discrepancy is explained by Lacepede, who 
says that when in their best condition they are not to be 
despised, and that the females in full roe are delicious. The 
principal use made of them in ancient times was as sauce for 
other fishes, and this we learn to have been formed chiefly 
from their entrails. 

Mr. Cock’s description of the Cornish example is: — The 
body oblong, compressed, and covered with large scales: the 
mouth small and protractile; jaws with a narrow band of 
minute fine-pointed teeth, densely packed together; a longitu- 
dinal band of the same along the middle of the palate (the 
vomer.) An elongated scale above each ventral fin, and one 
between these fins. Eyes large. Upper surface of the body 
dark lead grey, with bright silvery sides and belly. The 
length nine inches and a half, depth two inches and a 
quarter. But the most remarkable circumstance that belongs 
to this fish is its great diversity of colour in different places 
and seasons. Lacepede says it is generally white, with blue 
stripes along the side; a long dark spot on the side, above 
the vent; the fins red: but the colours become more lively 
in summer, and are generally so on the coast of Africa. 
Willoughby describes the colour as pale green or dusky 
yellow, with blue lines, and a large round dark blotch on 
the side, with spots and lines running obliquely over the 


208 


MENDOLU. 


■whole body, but especially on tbe back and bead; and be 
particularly points out four teetb in tbe ''wer jaw that were 
larger and longer than tbe others. Observers who have been 
well acquainted with this fish in one district, have felt them- 
selves at a loss, in consequence of this diversity of appearance, 
to recognise it in another. 

Fin rays, with some difference of enumeration by different 
writers, — dorsal eleven spmous and twenty-three soft; pectoral 
fifteen; ventral one spinous and five soft; anal three spinous 
and nine soft. 

The figure we give is taken from Willoughby’s “History of 
Fishes.” 







SURMULLET. 


209 


MTJLLUS 

Head compressed, and sloping in front; body thick and solid, together 
with the cheeks covered with large scales, which are easily displaced. 
Jaws slightly furnished with teeth, or not at all. Two barhs at the 
origin of the throat. Two fins on the back, which are separate. First 
gill-cover having its border smooth. Thoracic fishes. 


SURMULLET. 


Mullus, 


Mttllus surmuletus, 

(( (t 

tS tt 

« (( 

Mulle surmulet, 

(( (t 


JoNSTON; Cap. 1, Art. 1, M. major, 
table 17, f. 6. 

WiLLOD&HBT; p. 285, tab. S. 7, f. 1. 
Linnius. Cuvier. Bloch, pi. 57. 
Donovan, pi. 12. Flemino; Br. An., p. 216. 
Jbsyns; Manual, p. ,S.37. 

Yakeell; British Fishes, vol. i, p. 30. 
Lacepede. Eisso. 

Gunther’s Cat. Br. Museum, vG. i, p. 301. 


The Surmullet is a common fish along the coast of the 
south and west of England, and is known in Ireland and 
Scotland, and even much farther north where such ground 
occurs as is fitted to its habits. But if a fish can be said 
to have its chief residence where it attains the largest size 
and liveliest colours, that favourite district is the west portion 
of the channel which divides England from France. It may 
be termed a fish of passage, so far as a change from the 
deeper water of the middle of the channel to its borders, 
according to the season, will allow of its being thus charac- 
terized ; for, while it is not unfrequently taken in a trawl 
net at a great depth in winter, — and on one occasion a trawl 
vessel of Plymouth at that season took so many fish, of which 
Surmullets formed by far the largest portion, as were sold for 
twenty pounds, — they do not come within the reach of the 
trammel or ground-sean until about the month of May; and, 
VOL. 1. 2 II 


210 


St RMULLET. 


although it is the habit of this fish to keep close to the 
bottom, the change of place is effected by swimming near the 
surface over a large depth of water, by doing which it often 
becomes entangled m the drift-nets set at a distance from land 
for the spring approach of Mackerel. 

The trammel-net, which is chiefly used to take this fish 
near the coast, is formed of three parallel nets set to one 
head and foot line, with meshes of some considerable difference 
of dimensions in the separate nets, the middle one having 
the distance from knot to knot just sufficiently large to 
receive the head and forward part of the fish, while the 
outermost net on either side, which hangs a little more loosely, 
has its meshes sufficiently large to allow of the passage of 
the body of the fish until it has felt itself arrested in its 
course: at which time its struggles call the larger meshes 
into action to form a bag or entanglement, by wliich the 
captive fish is prevented from falling out and being lost 
when the net is drawn to the surface. This net is set in 
places known to fishermen, where the ground is oozy, with 
scattered stones; and it is proper that the foot-rope should 
rest on the ground, for the fish is disposed to find its way 
under it in seeking its food, wliich is the smaller kinds of 
crustaceous animals and worms, which rest on the ground; 
with perhaps sea-weeds. Its stomach is thick and firm, and I 
have also found in it foagments of a shell resembling the class 
termed a Venus; but it was an opinion of ancient times that 
this fish fed on, and even gave a preference to, every foul 
and loathsome substance, among which putrid fishes, and even 
the human carcass, stood pre-eminent. Oppian says, — 

“Of all the kinds that range the spacious flood, 

Luscious Surmullets seek the coarsest food. 

In beds of slime they roll with wanton ease, 

And cull the grossest ordure of the seas; 

But shipwrecked men, (detested sights of woe,) 

The richest course of luxury bestow; 

Whatever baits a nauseous smell diffuse 
With sure success commend their constant use. 

Swine and Surmullets seem alike inclined. 

Mean in their choice, their palates mircflned; 

But none that yield a more delicious food 
Or haunt the forest or divide the flood.” 

In proof of their alleged fondnejs for human flesh it has 


SURMULLET. 


211 


been remarked that they have been found to assemble in 
larger numbers after a great battle at sea. Happily it is out 
of our power to confirm or deny this last alleged fact; but 
an ins2)ection of the mouth of this fish, so small and toothless, 
renders it incredible that at any time the human body or 
any large object should be the subject of its appetite. That 
it will take a hook, however, is familiarly known, although 
this does not appear to be usual until the decline of summer, 
when it enters harboims and is fished for from rocks and piers. 

The Surmullet is well furnished for searching out its prey 
by the possession of a pair of barbs, which hang below the 
middle of its lower jaw, and are endued with quick powers 
of sensation, residhig in nerves, one in each of the pah, which 
pass along their outer side, and, next to the nerves of 
vision, are the largest in the body. The barbs themselves are 
so jrlaced, that when the fish rests upon the ground or passes 
along, they can be lifted u]p and hid between the bones of 
the gills; but they are in such a manner attached to a frame- 
work of bones separate from the jaws, but united to them by 
ligament at one end, and are acted on by muscles of such 
considerable jiower, as to be capable of acting in every 
direction in the examination of neighbourhig objects. 

Ancient writers were so fully jiersuaded of its producing 
spawn three times in the course of a year, that they gave it 
the name of Trigld from that circumstance; which name has, 
however, in modern times been bestowed on another genus of 
fishes; and they believed the selected place to be near the 
mouths of large rivers. We see, however, but little signs of 
its breeduig on our coasts. 

The Smunullet is now, as it ever has been, an object of 
enquiry to those who indulge in the luxuries of the table, 
so that it became a proverb, that those who caught it never 
knew the taste of it; but to obtain it in its perfection it 
ought to be in the hands of the cook within a few hours after 
it has been taken from the water. The ancients were aware 
of this, and it was something more than curiosity which led 
the Romans to produce the living fishes on the table for the 
insjjoction of the guests, before they delivered them to the 
cook. Seneca tells us they were scarcely valued unless they 
had died in the presence of the guests. Those which with us 


212 


SURMULLET. 


are caught in a trawl, from the loss of their scales and 
bruised condition, are still more prone to decay than such as 
are taken in the trammel; and care in this respect is the more 
necessary, as a large portion of their rich flavoiu’ depends on 
the particular manner in which they are cooked. It is 
necessary that the enti'ails (and especially the liver) should 
remain within the fish when they are roasted or baked, and 
they are rolled in paper to protect the skin from being undidy 
scorched with the heat, — a mode of preparation, which, it is 
not a little remarkable, has been practised for at least two 
tliousand years; as we learn from JElian, who says that it was 
the custom to roast them, and that skilful cooks professed to 
hinder the belly from bursting by kissing the mouth of the 
fish.— B. X, C. 7. 

In no article of luxury does it appear that the Romans of 
the empii-e went to such extravagant, and even ridiculous ex- 
tent as in regard to this fish; but that there is no exaggeration 
in the statements of the poets, appears from the corroboration 
afforded by the sober relations of the moralists and historians. 
The utmost pains and cost were bestowed on the formation 
of ponds for preserving these fish, and thereby having them 
always at hand; but unhappily success did not always attend the 
effort, and Columella (De re Rustica, B. 8, C. 17,) informs us 
that when caught, — it must be supj)osed in what we now term 
a ground-scan — and turned into the pond, scai’cely one in 
several thousands survived to reward the care bestowed upon 
them. This loss he ascribes to the nobility of the fish, which 
spurned confinement; but we can more readily impute it to 
the stagnant nature of the water, which admitted of little 
change in a place where there existed only a very small 
influence of the tide, and which therefore experienced renewal 
only from the uncertain influx of waves when the wind might 
chance to blow high and in a favourable direction. We speak of 
the Surmullet as having been the subject of so much extrav- 
agant attention, but there is reason to believe that what we 
shall presently find occasion to mention, ajjplies more directly 
to the plain Red Mullet; — the next in order in our arrange- 
ment, and much the most abundant along the coasts of the 
hlediterranean, rather than to the larger and more ornamented 
fish which chiefly abounds in Britain. But there was little 


SURMUr.T.ET. 


213 


discrimination of nearly-allied species even among the most 
observant writers, in ancient times; and we have reason to 
believe also, that in some of the stranger tales handed down 
to ns, the larger, and to us more familiar fish, was truly that 
to which the narrative refers. 

Besides the enormous cost that was unavoidable in the form- 
ation of some of the fishponds into which salt water was 
admitted, the expense was scarcely less for preserving those 
which survived the capture in that healthy condition in which 
it was necessary they should appear if carried to the market; 
for it caused their owner to he subject to sharp criticism if 
any marks of neglect or under feeding could be noticed in 
them. We are informed that in his private ponds Hortensius 
was accustomed to employ a large mmiber of men in attendmg 
to the wants of his Mullets by supplying them with small 
fishes; and they were supplied with salt fish when boisterous 
weather proved a hindrance to his obtaining food from the 
sea. Lucullus is sufficiently known for the great expense he 
was at in forming his ponds, and especially for the enormous 
cost of digging tlu’ough a hill, to obtain a passage into them 
for the water of the sea; and yet he was blamed by Horten- 
sius for want of care in allowing his fish to remain in 
what he considered an unhealthy situation. He declared that 
he would bestow more attention on his sick fishes than on 
his sick servants; and this care of his extended to the furnish- 
ing them with water artificially wai'ined, while his sick servants 
were left without any such conveniency. He would even be 
better reconciled to the loss of one of the chariot-mules from 
his stable than that he should lose a Mullet from his pond. — 
(Varro, He re Rustica, B. iii, C. 17.) 

Nor was this feeling to bo ascribed to the merely pecuniary 
value of these fishes, although the prevalence of fashion was 
such, that those who were desu’ous of having a name among 
the high and noble, and for that purpose of making a display 
of luxury, were ready to pay an extravagant price for the 
coveted dish. Martial has an epigram on one who sold a 
valuable slave, that with the price he might for once thus 
indulge himself, and bo talked of, although, in fact, he gave 
his guests but little else to cat. And we hear of another of 
these apes of the rich and the noble, who would not be without 


214 


SURMULLET. 


a dainty so mncli esteemed, but who contented himself with 
half of a fish, as all he was able to supply. Under these 
circumstances the price might be expected to rise very high, 
and accordingly a IMullct of two pounds (each pound amounting 
to twelve ounces) was expected to bring its weight of sil\er. 
This value, however, was often exceeded, and especially per- 
haps when the fish had grown scarce in their own waters, 
and in consequence were sought for on the distant coasts of 
Corsica and the south of Sicily. At that time a thousand 
sesterces were equal to three pounds of silver, and, according 
to this reckoning, Juvenal speaks of a single Surmullet as 
having obtained the price of almost fifty pounds; and if as 
a satiric poet he may be suspected of exaggeration, his story 
is confirmed by the more sober Suetonius, who tells us that 
on one occasion three of these Mullets were sold for thirty 
thousand sesterces, which made at least seventy pounds for 
each fish. Juvenal remarks on examples of this nature, that 
the fisherman might have been bought for less money than 
his fish; and, according to Pliny, so might, in former days, 
the cook that dressed it. 

According to the last-named author, Asinius Celer expended 
sixty-five pounds in the purchase of a single MuUet; which 
will render less extraordinary a story told of the Emperor 
Tiberius, in which instance the price obtained will be ascribed 
to the wish of contending courtiers to obtain the notice of 
their prince, rather than to the fashionable value of the fish 
itself. It appears that some one had obtained a Mullet which 
reached the unusual weight of four pounds and a half, and 
which he judged a proper present for the emperor; but the 
latter, either from avarice or caprice gave command that it 
should be carried to the market for public sale, where two 
noblemen contended for the purchase until it reached the sum 
of five thousand sesterces, or fifteen pounds of silver. But 
people of a lower degree had similar aspirations; and an 
J^gyptian, who had been a slave and had obtained his fieedom, 
and afterwards being raised to the rank of a knight by the 
Emperor Domitian, was rich enough, as well as sufficiently 
ambitious, to pay six thousand sesterces for the fish. And 
yet, stranger still, all of these examples must give way to 
what is told of the Emperor Ileliogabalus, who, in a freak 


SURMULLET. 


215 


of ostentation as we must suppose, indulged himself with a 
dish which was formed of only the harhs of this expensive fish. 

The head and liver were the parts which constituted the 
particular objects of attraction to those who prided themselves 
on their taste: and that the last-named part was such we can 
easily understand, whether formed into sauce or as a portion 
of the cooked fish, for in truth it is this which yields the 
larger portion of its delicious flavour. But it is not so easy to 
discern what it could he that recommended the head to the 
epicure, except that so little of anything could be extracted 
from it. The well-known Apicius, who spent a large fortune 
in the indulgence of his appetite, believed that he had secured 
an addition to his luxuries by droM'niiig Mullets in a rich 
sauce of great cost, known by the name of the Sauce of the 
Allies, and supposed to he made of the entrails of Mackerel 
infused in very strong vinegar. But it is easy to perceive 
that fancy only, or the craving after notoriety, so powerful 
in his day, must have been the chief inducement to this pro- 
ceeding; for the fishes could not receive any portion of the 
flavoiu' into their flesh until they were dead. 

The practice of presenting the living fish to the guests at 
table, swimming in glass vessels, which had its origin in the 
wdsh to secure them in the best condition for the cook, became 
afterwards a fashion; and there were those who found a 
pleasure in pointing out the succession of changes through 
wliich the captive passed as the powers of life declined. 
The Surmullet is one of those fishes which after death never 
recover the brilliant tints which adorn them during life, and 
when at freedom in their native seas. 

It is curious to find that there were some who probably 
acquired equal notoriety with others, and at the same time 
saved their purse, by professing to despise the fish which 
others so greatly coveted. Boeticus, as Martial sj^eaks of him, 
cordd not eat the Mullet, the hai-e, the boar, the pheasant, 
nor other dainties; but he preferred the Gerres and other 
fishes, which held the same value as with us the Sprat; and 
Martial declares for himself that although he valued a Mullet 
of two pounds weight as equal to a Turbot, yet both these 
fishes lost their relish when alloyed by the prate of hi.s 
entertainer. 


216 


surmullet. 


I have known a Surmullet to measure sixteen inclies in 
length, hut being thin in flesh it did not exceed forty ounces 
in weight. The form is but a little compressed, and flattened 
on the belly. The eyes elevated; head proportionally large, 
sloping gradually, and in a waved outline to the mouth. 
Upper jaw a little the longest; teeth in the lower jaw only; 
a roughness, rather than teeth, in the j^alate; two long barbs 
beneath the lower jaw, which are received into a depression 
beneath. Several mucous orifices between the upper jaw and 
eye. The back elevated; body and cheeks covered with large 
scales, which are easily removed; those on the lateral line 
perforated, having a rayed ridge in their longitudinal direc- 
tion: this line is gently curved. The first dorsal fin with 
spinous rays, which gradually shorten from the first; second 
dorsal opposite the anal; the first ray of the former spinous, 
the latter fin nearly triangular. The pectorals narrow and 
pointed; ventrals long and wide; tail concave. 

The colours are subject to some variation, but are always 
rich and brilliant, but more so in life than after death. The 
back, head, and generally the fins, red or scarlet, which is 
softened on the cheeks and sides, and still fainter on the 
belly; along the sides four yellow stripes, the lowest reaehing 
only half the length of the body. The anterior dorsal fin 
with a broad diagonal stripe of bright yellow. Of five of 
these fishes caught together, four were of the more usual 
eolour, but the fifth was much the most splendid in its appear- 
ance, the belly being also of the most brilliant crimson. The 
lines on the sides were scareely to be discerned, but as life, 
declined the colours became more faint, and the lines became 
conspicuous as in the others. 



Skull of the Surmullet. 


Pectoral scales. 



RED MULLET. 


m 


RED MULLET. 

PLAIN BED MULLET. 


Mullus minor, 

“ harhatus, 

it tt 

tt t( 

ft « 

Le Mulle Jlonrjet, 


.Tonston; Capud 1, Art. 1, Tab. 17, f. 6. 
Willouguby; p. 286, Tab. S. 7. 

LiNNA;as. Ogvieb. 

Jenyns; Manual, p. 338. 

Tabrell; British Fishes, vol. i, p. 36. 
Lacepede. Ersso. GnsTiiEa’s Catalogue 
of British Museum, vol. i, p. 401. 


The Red Mullet appears to be most common in the 
Mediterranean, although Risso 'Seems to remark the contrary; 
hut it was certainly the species to which many of the anecdotes 
of ancient writers, which we have given when speaking of 
the Surmullet, most frequently apply. On our own coasts, 
however, it is a rare visitor, so that when an example is met 
with it is thought deserving of special notice. Yet it has 
been taken at the two extremes of the kingdom, for while 
Mr. Cocks records it as met with at Falmouth, Dr. George 
Johnston has published the notice of one obtained by himself 
on the coast of Berwickshire. 

In its general shape, and, accordhig to Dr. Gunther, in the 
frame of its bones, it bears a near resemblance to the Common 
Striped Surmullet, insomuch that some have supposed the 
former to be only a variety of the latter. It may happen, 
perhaps, that the mere circvunstance of colour will not prove 
sufficient to distinguish them; for, although the Red Mullet 
may never display the well-marked stripes commonly found 
in the Surmullet, it has been observed that the latter (at 
least during life) may chance to have them concealed by the 
brilliancy of its otlier colour. But although the colour of 


218 


RED MULLET. 


eacli usually may be red, we gather from the words of Ovid 
that its hue is not commonly the same. That of the Surmullet 
we know to be lively in a high degree, but of the plain red 
species the poet says, — 

“Squalus tenui suffnsus sanguine Mullus;" 

“The dull-coloured Mullet that has a slight tint of blood shed over it;” 

an observation supported by Willoughby, who says the colour 
is a dull olive yellow, except when the scales are lost, when 
it becomes more decidedly red. It should be added, however, 
that in the edition of Aldus the word ‘squamas’ is substituted 
for ‘squalus,’ as if the scales were suffused with the tint of 
blood. 

But a more positive evidence of their being distinct is 
found in the general characters of form and relative situation 
of the fins. By reference to figures, and especially to that 
of Willoughhy, which, for want of an opportunity to di-aw 
from a fresh example, we have thought it best to copy, — as 
well as to his description, — ^we find the head descending 
much more abruptly from before the eyes to the jaws. The 
first dorsal fin also is further in advance of the pectorals, 
while the ventrals are placed further behind. At fuU. growth 
it is smaller than the Surmullet, and, while more abrupt hi 
front, the hinder part of the body grows sensibly more slender. 

Fill rays— first dorsal seven, (the first very high,) second 
dorsal nine, caudal seventeen, anal seven, pectoral sixteen, 
ventral six. 

This species anciently received the designation of Barhatus, 
or the Bearded, in contrast with another fish, supposed to be 
nearly allied to it, and which by way of further distinction, 
received the name of Mullus imherbis, or the Unbearded 
Mullet, as being destitute of those appendages to the jaws. 
Modern naturalists have judged more correctly of the natural 
affinities of these fishes, and in consequence have placed the 
latter hi another genus; which, however different in many 
respects from the true Mullets, they have, with some incon- 
sistency, agreed to call by the name of Ttiglu, which anciently, 
and for an assigned reason, was only applied to the former 
fishes. But it is proper we should add that the error of re- 


RED MULLET 


219 


mote times, in classing together the so-called Mullus harhatus 
and 31. imherbis, will not be found without some excuse; for 
these two fishes bear considerable resemblance to each other 
in their general form and colour, as well as habits, and the 
latter is often caught in the same net with the Surmullet; 
added to which, when taken it is usual for the barbs of the 
Mullet to he drawn beneath the throat, thus rendering the 
resemblance still more close. 

The existence of the three processes or fingers near the 
pectoral fins in the Streaked Gurnard, might, indeed, hare 
been sufficient at any time to point out the generic difference 
between them; but it had not that efiect even with such 
observant and systematic naturalists as Artedi, Linnscus, and 
Gronovius, who have agreed to class this fish with the 
"Gurnards, (Triglce,) although ‘Willoughby and Ray had long 
before marked the distinction between them. 


I 


VOL. 1. 


220 


TPIE SPAEOID FAMILY, OR SEA BREAMS. 

These fiskes are compressed in the iorm and proportions 
of their body and cheeks, with a tendency to an oval in the 
outline; the checks and body firmly clothed with scales, but 
not having them extended over the fins. Anterior portion of 
the dorsal fin with spinous rays, the hinder portion having 
soft and branched rays. The jaws usually or nearly equal, 
but the teeth subject to much variety; and as the species are 
numerous, a large part of which inhabit warmer climates 
than our own, naturalists have found it necessary to divide 
them into several sections or genera, which is most conveniently 
done according to the form and arrangement of their teeth. 
It is the consequence of this that there exists a near affinity 
between these several genera, and that, indeed, it often haiipens 
there is less difference in the characters of some of the 
genera than is found between the species in other departments 
of nature. 

As is the case with other fishes which come to us from 
warmer or brighter seas, either as periodical or wandering 
visitors, they are subject to change of colour, and remarkably 
so when in their highest condition, as compared witli their 
emaciated or lower state. And as it is not always convenient 
to destroy a specimen, which must often be done if we wisli 
to examine the full course of the teeth, it need not siirjuisc 
us if it happen that the rarer species have not been always 
clearly recognised; and conseiiucntly that they have not been 
in every case referred to the proper synonymes, as designated by 
other observers. Such mistakes have been laid 'o the rdiarge 
of sonic of our most careful authors; and it is in orilcr that 
1 may keep clear of the mrfortunc of increasing such errors, 
that, in describing the specie"- which have been recorded as 
occurring in Britain, my references to others, and especially to 
foreign writers, will be less frequent than usual, or as might 


THE SrAROin FAMILY. 


221 


otherwise be desired. Our dependence, on the contrary, will 
be chiefly on our own resources j so that we shall not give 
any figure or descriptions of the members of this family, even 
to the risk of an omission, except of such as have fallen under 
our own inspection: or if in any case a reference is made to 
another writer, it will be in such a manner that the borrowed 
matter may be easily separated from our own. 

The fishes of this family are classed together as thoracic 
fishes by Linnseus, and both the Swedish naturalist and Cuvier 
have included in it the genera Dentex and Mcetia, which we 
have followed the example of Dr. Gunther by placing in a 
separate family. 


222 


CANTHAETJS. 

The body elevated and tbict; muzzle short. Jaws not protractile; 
teeih fine, short, and dense, the outward row strongest. 


OLD WIFE. 

BLACK SEA BREAM. 


Canfha/nis, 

Spams cantJiarus, 

Cantharus griseus, O. vulgaris, 

It ti It 

It II ti 

Pagrus lineatus, 

Cantharus lineatus, 


■WlLLOnGHBY; p. 309, tab. V. 1. 
LrNijj®ns. 

Cuvier. 

Yarrell ; Br. Fishes, vol. i, p. 130. 
Jenyns; Manual, p. 358. 

Fleming; Br. Animals, p. 211. 
Guniher; Oat. Br. Museum, p. 413, 


This is a common species on the west and south coasts of 
England and Ireland, hut as it is a solitary fish it can 
scarcely be called abundant. It is with us in summer and 
autumn, at which time it is caught, in common with the 
other species of this family, with the common baits used by 
fishermen, hut of which the mussel is perhaps the most suc- 
cessful. It also feeds on the finer kinds of sea-weeds, upon 
which it becomes exceedingly fat. I have known it caught so 
late in the year as Christmas, and in one instance, after a 
cold season, an example came to hand in the middle of Feb- 
ruary, with the roc well developed. In this instance at least 
it would have bred on our own coasts, which is not usually 
the case, so that it is not often met with of less size than the 
usual full growth. It seems to prefer rocky ground, and is 
sometimes taken in harbours, by fishing from the shore. 

With us it is scarcely admitted to genteel tables, but in 



I 


XLIX 




OLD WIFE. 


223 


ancient times it appears to have been an object of attention, 
since Oppian describes the kind of trap termed nassa, or 
wicker pot, as used specially for taking it. The males were 
supposed to associate each with bis own female for life. This 
species is widely distributed, its range extending at least 
from Scotland to the Island of Teneriffe, and tlirough the 
Mediterranean. 

The translator of Oppian follows Gaza, who translated 
Aristotle’s name of this fish by the corresponding English 
word Beetle, and this name, however uncertain, is still con- 
tinued as the designation of the genus in which this fish is 
classed. I have assigned it the name by which alone it is 
known to the fishermen with whom I am acquainted; and, 
although this name may be obiected to as being also applied 
to a foreign fish of a different family — the Balistes vetula, the 
latter probably having received its English name of Old Wife 
from some supposed resemblance it bears to the Cantharus 
lineatus — yet the name I give it is less objectionable than 
that of Black Sea Bream, since the latter is not in any case 
descriptive of its colour, as will appear from our description. 

The example described was sixteen inches in length and five 
in depth, exclusive of the fins. The general form comjDrcssed, 
but solid; mouth rather small, and the under jaw a little 
protruding; the teeth crowded, slender, erect, with some molar 
teeth behind. Eye rather small, lateral; a large single nostril 
a little before it, and another close to the angle of the mouth, 
under the projecting bone. The head rises considerably, and 
still more the back to the dorsal fin; cheeks and body covered 
with scales, firmly fixed, and of moderate size. Lateral line 
arched, conspicuous. The dorsal fin begins above the root of 
the pectoral, and both it and the anal become wider poste- 
riorly; the three last rays of the former and two of the 
latter severally from one root, and bound down; pectorals 
broad at the base, long, and pointed, and the roots of the 
rays clothed with scales; tad concave. The colour is liable to 
much variation, according to the season and health of the fish. 
When most lively the cheeks are flesh-coloured; top of the 
head, round the eyes, and part of the cheeks a rich brown; 
summit of the back obscurely green; behind this and over the 
body reddish yellow, with irregular dark brown lines. A 


234 


OT.T> WIFE. 


single example in tlie montli of September was a uniform 
pink colour; but when the colours fade this fish becomes of 
a dull and sooty tint. 

Fin rays — dorsal eleven to thirteen, pectoral fifteen, ventral 
six, anal three to eleven. Between the ventral fins is a loose 
triangular flap, pointing backward. 



i 



B 0 G O E. 


225 


BOOPS. 

Othek characters as in the sparoid fishes; teeth of the outward row 
broad and cutting; mouth rather small. 


BOGUE. 


BOX. 


Bodps, Box, Bo'ez, 
Bodps primus, 

Sparus hoops, 

Boops or Box vulgaris, 

(t tt <( 

Le Spare Bague, 
Bogue, 


OXEYE. 


JoNSTON; Table 20, f. 8. 
Willoughby; p, 317, tab. v. 8. 
Linnhsus. 

Cuvier. 

Yaerell; Br. Fishes, 2nd. Sup. 
Lacepede. 

Eisso. 


In some parts of the European side of the IMediterranean 
the Bogue is a common fish, and where it frequents it is in 
great abundance. Outside the Straits of Gibraltar also, it is 
found far to the south, so that it is known in the Canary 
Islands, and even, perhaps, in the West Indies. But it is not 
commonly found to wander northward; and therefore it is not 
a fish that we should expect to visit our coasts, for the in- 
fluences which point its course in that direction, across such 
a depth of water, however powerful, appear to be exceedingly 
obscure. 

The first British example we have a record of was caught 
in a ground-scan, in company with Grey Mullets, in the early 
part of October, 184.2, at St. Mawes, in the harbour of Fal- 
mouth, and fortunately came into the hands of Alfred Fox, 
Esq., who caused a drawing to be taken, from which our 


£26 


BOGUE. 


figure is derived. The specimen itself was afterwards preserved, 
and is now in the Museum of the Eoyal Cornwall Institution 
at Truro. Since that time several examples have been caught 
at the same place, and one of them was presented to the 
British Museum by W. P. Cocks, Esq. 

The general habits of this fish hear some resemblance to 
the others of this family, and especially in its food, which is 
partly animal — of such small creatures as fall in its way. 
But it also feeds on sea vegetables, and is consequently found 
to keep chiefly in places where they most abound. Its teeth, 
the form of which we copy from Cuvier, are well fitted to 
crop these weeds from the rocks; and its mtestines are long, 
convoluted, and capacious, as is the case with all creatures, 
as well of the land as water, which are hr the habit of 
making vegetables a considerable portion of their food. 

It is said to be an agreeable diet, and hence, we are told, 
it meets with a ready sale. 

The Bogue grows to the length of eight or nine inches. 
Jonston says it reaches to a foot, but Willoughby remarks that 
he never met with one of so great a length; and yet the 
example from which our figure and description are taken, 
measured in extreme length the dimensions assigned to it by 
the first-named writer. The general form is thick and solid; 
the head small proportionahly to the bulk of the body, and 
the gape narrow. The teeth are wide, thin, and cutting, of 
the shape seen in the figure. The greatest depth of the 
specimen described was closely behind the termination of the 
pectoral fin, where it measnred two inches and seven eighths, 
and from thence it tapers to the origin of the tail. The eye 
is larger than in others of its family; cheeks and body with 
large scales; lateral line' high and straight. The dorsal fin is 
highest at its beginning, and from thence it grows narrow in 
its progress, as does also the anal fin; the pectorals rather 
narrow. The colour along the back, from the snout to the 
tail, is a bluish purple, mottled along the top of the head, 
and with tints of pink and vermilion about the eyes. By 
authors who have studied this fish in its more native haunts, 
the stripes along the sides are described as of a brilliant 
gold-colour, separated by stripes of bright silver; the belly 
silvery. But in the Cornish example the yellow on the sides 


BOGUE. 


m 


is faint, and tlie brilliant whiteness is changed to dull. The 
dorsal and anal fins are of a faint blue, as is the tail, with tints 
of pink. 

The fin rays are enumerated by Willoughby — dorsal fifteen, 
anal nineteen; by Risso — dorsal fourteen to sixteen, anal three 
to sixteen, yentral one to five, pectoral fourteen, caudal 
seventeen; by us — dorsal fourteen, anal three. 



Teeth of Bogue. 


228 


PAGRUS. 

Two TOWS of small rounded molar teeth in each jaw; the front 
teeth fine and crowded; strong conical teeth in the outer series. 


BECKER. 


This is one of the fishes of which Dr. Gunther, in his 
“Catalogue of the Fishes of the British Museum,” has ex- 
pressed his opinion that Mr. Yarrell, in his history of our 
native species, has made the mistake of uniting the figure of 
one — the true Pagrus — copied fi-om Cuvier’s work, with the 
description and synonymes of a different species. 

Wliere fishes so nearly resemble each other as a large 
portion of this family are known to do, the marks of distinction, 
which are laid down by desci-iption only, as also figures taken 
from examples perhaps badly preserved, and when their dis- 
tinguishing tints have faded, are very likely to lead to errors 
of reference, similar to those which, in this instance and a 
few others, are attributed to my deceased friend. But if in 
this instance such an error has been fallen into, it has ex- 
tended far more widely than Dr. Gunther appears to suppose, 
since it is shared by most of the British naturalists, if not 
indeed by all, and not excluding the names of those excellent 
observers Willoughby and Ray. These last-named authors, 
who acted together, had travelled along the shores of the 
Mediterranean, for the special purpose of studying the natural 
history of the fishes of that sea in conneetion with those of 
their native country; and as some misunderstanding appears 
then to have existed in regard to the two fishes which had 
fallen within their observation, they have drawn at considerable 
length a comparison between them. The first is the Erythrinus 
or RubeUio, which Dr. Gunther believes to be the same with 



f 








V-f ' 




BECKER. 


229 


this fish said to be mistaheii by Mr. Yarrell for the true 
Pagrus of the older and continental authors. The above- 
named distinguished Eritish naturalists inform us that the 
Pagrvs they are describing is the same that was known by 
the name of Pagrus to Rondeletius, Bclon, Aldrovandus, and 
Gcsner, and that it was known in England as (at least a 
species of) Sea Bream. 

The figure they give, Tab. v. 1, f. 5, is certainly different 
from that of the fish familiarly known to us as the Becker; 
and indeed if I felt myself compelled to resort to some 
already published likeness for a representation of the species 
known to our fishermen by the name of Becker, it would 
not be this, but rather to the original of Mr. YarrelTs figure, 
at *east in its outline, to which I would assign the preference. 
The distinctions drawn by Willoiighby and his friend between 
the species he knew as Erythrinus, and that which he de- 
nominates the Pagrus, besides the wide difference of form, is, 
among others, that the Pagrus so much exceeds it in size as 
to attain the weight of ten pounds, while that of the Erylhri- 
nus rarely amounts to a pound and a half. Willoughby is 
particular in mentioning the sinus or gathering up, which is 
so conspicuous at the end of the dorsal and anal fins, in his 
Pagrus and our Becker; but he unfortunately adds that there 
is a strongly-marked iron-coloured spot on the side, at the 
origin of the lateral line, which does not exist either in our 
Becker or the two species he names, as represented in his 
figures, and which, in our British Sea Breams, is only seen 
in Pagellus centrodontus and P. curtus, if the latter should 
prove to be a sejrarate species. 

Amidst so much apparent doubt and confusion it therefore 
becomes necessary that no further mingling of synonymes should 
take place; and hence, as regards the present species and one 
or two more that will follow, my intention is to confine myself 
to such a representation, both of resemblance and description, 
as shall present a satisfactory account of the species as it is 
found with us, without mingling it with the authority of British, 
and still less with that of foreign writers. 

The Becker is common on the south and west of England, 
but it does not appear to be of frequent occurrence in the 
north of England or Scotland. It probably will be found in 


230 


BECKER. 


Ireland also, but it is not mentioned in Thompson’s natural 
history of that country. Its habits are migratory, and its visits 
are confined to the summer and autumn, leaving us on the 
approach of colder -weather in the beginning of winter. It is 
a solitary fish, so that it is not usual to find more than one 
or two at once in a boat, and those only of the full growth: 
for it has never been our chance to obtain an individual in 
the earlier stage of its growth. Its residence is at the depth 
of several fathoms, where its food is like that of the other 
Sea Breams. The mussel appears to be a favomcite bait, but 
the smaller fishes, crustacean animals, and sea vegetables are 
eagerly devoured. 

This fish is found from fourteen to sixteen inches in length, 
aiid a usual weight is five or six pounds. The head and body 
compressed, sloping from the origin of the dorsal fin to the 
mouth; lips fleshy; jaws about equal; eyes rather small, lateral; 
nostrils near the eye, large, and open; scales on the body and 
gill-covers large. The body deep, narrow'er towards the tail. 
Dorsal fin, and also the anal, expanded towards their termi- 
nation; their posterior rays bound down, without much freedom 
of motion, and the skin at the sides is gathered up, so as to 
leave a considerable chink below. Lateral line rising in a 
gentle sweep, depressed near the termination of the dorsal and 
anal fins. Tail concave, pectoral pointed, ventrals large. 
Colour of the back bright red, -with a tint of pink, and 
sometimes of green before the dorsal fin. The red paler 
towards the tail; fins generally red, except the ventrals and 
anal, which are dusky. Iris yellow or red, sometimes with 
tints of green. 

Tia rays — dorsal nine, anal three. 




231 


COUCH’S SEA BREAM. 


Couch’s Sea Bream, 
Pagrus orphus, 


Zoologist, vol. i, p. 81, 1843. 

CuviEa. 

Gunthee; Cat. Br. M., toI. i, p. 467. 
Zoologist, 1S46. 

Taeeellj Br. Fishes, 2nd. Sup,, p. 4. 


Pagellus Bondeletii, 


There appears to be only one recorded instance of the 
capture of this remarkable species in this country, and in 
many respects it appears to be scarcely known to naturalists 
in general, although described by Cuvier as a native of the 
Mediterranean. The figure given by the last-named author, 
although referred to above, at least in the outline of its 
physiognomy, is but little characteristic ; and the likeness of the 
Chrysophrys crassirostris would better answer to the fish we 
are about to describe. It was taken on the 8th. of November, 
1842, with a baited hook, at a rocky ledge termed the Edges, 
at the distance of three miles south of Polperro, in Cornwall, 
and was placed in my possession as soon as it was brought 
on shore. 

Its weight was six pounds. The head thick, the muzzle 
remarkably so, and rounded; the line of the front sloping 
suddenly from the forehead to the mouth; eyes of moderate 
size, high, and near the front; nostrils in a slight depression, 
the superior large and open. Jaws equal, not protruding, the 
lower with a well-marked chin. The teeth in front stout, 
somewhat separate, those of the upper aud lower jaws inter- 
locking. The scales large, and conspicuous on the hinder 
gUl-covers; on the middle plate none, and slightly marked on 
the anterior plate. The head being short the back rises high 
above it. Lateral line very dark, not greatly curved, and 
scarcely continued to the tail, the body ending in a defined 
form at the origin of the caudal fin, with an incision oiiposite 


232 


couch’s sea bream. 


the course of the lateral line. At the vent the body appeared 
as if constricted. Colour of the front and top of the head 
brownish red; of the back and fins as if formed by a mixture 
of lake and vermilion; the fins of the same colour, except the 
anal, which is pale yellow; sides pale red; belly whitish. Iris 
of the eye yellow. As the colours faded there appeared a 
yellow margin at the angles where the scales met. There was 
a gathering up at the termination of the dorsal and anal fins, 
as in the Becker, but less conspicuous, and more decidedly at 
the anal than the dorsal fin. The tail concave, but less regu- 
larly so than in most of the sparoid fishes. Jihird ray of the 
pectoral fin the longest. 

Fin rays — dorsal twelve firm and ten soft, pectoral thirteen, 
ventral four, anal three firm and eight soft. 

The remarkable shortness of the head, with the roundness 
and steepness in the declivity of the front, equality of the jaws, 
stoutness and interlocking of the teeth, and singular form of 
the chin, are sufficient to distinguish this species from every 
other recognised as British; and at the same time it so nearly 
agrees with the figure and description of Orphe, as given 
by Rondeletius, that I have little hesitation in believing it to 
be the same fish. The only difference 1 can find is, that he 
represents the vent as being very small; which is the contiary 
to what was perceptible in my example; but a vaiiety of 
circumstances will explain this slight discrepancy. 

Among ancient writers there appears to be much disagreement 
regarding this fish, but the difference of their accounts will be 
explained when we call to mind that with them seveial very 
different species bore the same name, and even that one so 
denominated — the Rud — is a fish of the fresh-water. Oppian 
appears to represent it as devouring shell-fish, which is not 
improbable when we take into account the form and solid 
structure of its grinding teeth; but he further states what 
would be highly remarkable if true; — ■ 

slow-dying Orfs, 

Whose bodies long will stubborn life retain. 

Eepeated wounds the tortured wretches feel, 

Yet dare the cruel hand and cutting steel; 

The parts disjoined and mangled as they lie, 

Still pant and move, and will at leisure die. 




erythrinus. 


233 


PAGELLUS. 

Sra T! reams with the molar teeth small, in two rows; the front teeth 
slender, numerous, the outward series slightly the largest. 


ERYTHIilNUS. 


Erytlirinus or ItuhelUo, .JonsTOU; p. 67, tab. 18, f. 6. 

“ •* Willougtiry; p. 311, tab. v. 6. 

Pagellus Erythnnus, Outieb; Gukiuee; Catalogue of 

Br. Museum, vol. i, p. 473. 


This fish is well known in the Mediterranean, and its range 
extends so high as the mouth of the Danube. It is also not 
uncommon to the southward as far as Teneriffe; hut its course 
to tlie north is less extensive, although it has been taken, not 
only in Cornwall and Devon, but in the Firth of Forth. 

In its more native seas it is in the habit, like most others 
of this family, of changing its haunts according to the season; 
in winter keeping in deeper water, but in summer drawing 
near the shore, where froin the regard in which its flesh is 
held it becomes an object of interest. Willoughby thought it 
most excellent in winter ; which at least implies that it is caught 
at that season. 

It may be readily distinguished from our Becker, or from 
the true'Pagrus, with which it has been confounded; and also 
from the Common Sea Bream, and the Spanish Bream. From 
the former it differs in its smaller and more lengthened form 
and sharper snout; in which particulars it also differs from the 
two last-named species; as well as from the adult growth of 
the Common Sea Bream in the absence of the conspicuous spot 
on the side. In the individual I have examined the colour 
also varied remarkably from all the species of this family I 
have seen; but this is less to be insisted on since Risso repre- 


234 


EE.YTIIRINUS. 


sents it differently from our description. That author says it 
is pale red on the hack, and light coloured helow; hut the 
colour as marked by myself was a darker, or brick red, and 
only varied by being paler on the belly. 

The extreme length was thirteen inches, and to the end of 
the middle rays of the tail eleven inches and a half. The gape 
rather small; under jaw slightly longer than the upper. Eye 
of moderate size. Posterior border of the giU-cover slightly 
concave at its upper portion. The dorsal fin somewhat elevated 
at its origin; the first ray lower than the second; this fin lowest 
at the termination of the spinous rays. Pectoral slender, the 
fifth ray the longest, reaching opposite the beginning of the 
anal fin. Ventrals long. Lateral line slightly curved, and 
suddenly bent down as it approaches the tail. The caudal 
fin more than usually concave. 

Pin rays — dorsal twelve spinous and ten soft, pectoral fifteen, 
ventral one spinous and five soft, anal three spinous and ten 
soft, caudal eighteen, besides obsolete rays. 


I 



SPANISH bream. 


23o 


SPANISH BREAM 


Axillary Bream, Yabuell; Br. Fishes, vol. i., p. 122. 

JPagellus Owenii, GumnEB’s Catalogue of the Br. Museum, 

vol. i., p. 478. 

This is one of the fishes on the synonymes of -which doubt is 
thrown by Dr. Gunther, as quoted above ; and on which there- 
fore, in conformity with a rule already laid down, we must be 
contented to make our remarks without reference to other authors j 
hut it is the best known to Cornish fishermen of all the species 
of Sea Breams that wander to our shores only on unusual occa- 
sions; and with them it bears the name of Spanish Bream; that 
name not being applied, as Mr. Yarrcll seems to have understood, 
to the Erythrinus, which was the subject of our last article; 
unless indeed it may have so happened by their confounding 
one with the other. 

We only meet -with single examples of this fish; which are 
usually caught with a common baited hook among other Sea 
Breams, in the summer and autumn. As, however, this fish 
hears some near resemblance to the fish next to be described, 
a close description will be best made by a comparison of one 
with the other. 

The weight scarcely exceeds two thirds of that of the Common 
Bream; the body rather more slender, head flatter on the top, 
eye smaller and more oval. Before the eye the snout more 
protruded, gape -wider; the grinding teeth broader and more 
blunt. Scarcely a dej)ression before the eyes to receive the 
nasal orifices; while in the common species they are conspicuous. 
Dorsal fin more elevated, the anal wider. The pectoral fin 
reaches opposite the vent, but in the Common Bream to the 
third ray of the anal fin. As we only meet with it in its full 
VUL. I. 2 L 


236 


SPANISH BKEAM. 


growth, the absence of the lateral spot is also a distinguishing 
mark. 

It appears to have been taken in Scotland as well as in the 
south counties of England. It is not mentioned among Irish 
fishes by Mr. Thompson; but there can he little doubt of its 
visiting that country also, if closely enquired after. 





COMMON SEA BREAM 


BREAN. 


Sparus aurafa, 

SpciTe Marseilloist 
Pagellus centroduntus, 


Donovan; pi. 89. 

Eisso. 

OoviER. GuNTiliiR’s Catalogue Br. 


Sparus centrodontus. 


Museum, vol. i., p. 476. 

Yaiuiell’s Br. Fislies, vol. i., p. 123. 
Jentks; Manual, p. 356. 


In regard, to tins "wliicli 'witli us is the most ahiindant 
of its family, an extraordinary amount of confusion has existed; 
which has been produced by mistaking it for some species that 
had been described in a general way by foreign writers, but 
which are of rare occurrence in Britain; so that our native 
writers had not possessed the opportunity of actually comparing 
the one with the other. Willoughby and his hiend John Bay 
ajpear to have led the way in this mistake; and being without 
a*fi<rure, and more intent on observing the fishes of the Medi- 
terrtnean than those of Britain, they appear to have satisfied 

themselves with the belief that this species, which they certainly 

must have been acquainted with, was the same with the Gdt- 
head, or Sparus aurata; which latter again they were scarcely 
able to distinguish from the Pagrus; and accordingly Willoughby 
calls his Pagrus by the English name a Sea Bream; which 
Ray, in his “Synopsis Piscium,” more definitely designates the 
Sea Bream; although the presence of the black spot on the 
side of the one and its absence from the others, should have 
been sufficient to have assured him of the difference between 
them. 

It does not appear that Linnseus was acquainted with the 
present species; and Pennant, to a characteristic likeness of the 


238 


COMMON SEA BREAM. 


Common Sea Bream, united a description of the Gilthead, whicli 
he appears to have borrowed from some other authority. It is 
further remarkable that even so lately as when Dr. Turton 
published his “Translation of the System of Liiinjeus,” he gave 
no sign by which we can conclude that he recognised our 
Sea Bream as a distinct species. Risso is probably correct in 
supposing that Laccpede refers to tliis fish by the name of 
Spar us massiliensis ; but the remarks of the French naturalist 
tend to shew that he knew but little of its form or habits. It 
is therefore to Risso himself that we are indebted for the first 
distinct description of this fish as a separate species. 

The Sea Bream is among our commonest, and at times most 
abundant fishes; and it is known Irom one extremity of the 
United Kingdom to the other. It breeds with us, and usually 
towards the end of the year, or in the months of winter; its 
station then being chosen at the depth of from thirty to forty 
fathoms. I have ascertained the existence of the young ones, 
of about an inch in length, early in January; but it seems 
probable that some of these fishes have not shed their spawn 
earlier than this season; and the young do not di-aw near the 
land until the spring has begun to yield to summer ; after which, 
and through the autumn, they abound along the coast, and in 
harbours where rock and the greener sea-weeds are common, 
where they are angled for in the evening with much success. 
At this season they measure from four to six inches in length; 
and do not shew the dark spot on the side, which afterwards 
becomes a distinguishing mark of the species. In this early stage 
they bear the name of Chads; hut towards the close of autumn 
the name changes as the darkened patch begins to appear. The 
spot, however, is not fully established until about the time of 
full growth; which is in the succeeding spring. 

This fish so far- partakes of the nature of the others of its 
family, as to be deeply sensible to cold; and in consequence 
it happens that in ordinarily severe winters it passes into deep 
water beyond the reach of fishermen. But it soon returns on 
the restoration of a milder temperature, sometimes in considerable 
numbers. It occasionally happens, indeed, that from influences 
not easily understood, they assemble in enormous multitudes; 
and this occurs most frequently about the close of summer, 
when they have been observed, contrary to their ordinary habits. 


COMMON SEA BREAM. 


239 


to rise to the surface and pursue their course, as if engaged 
in some important business of migration, dheir actions under 
these circumstances have sometimes led the managers of Pilchard 
scans into considerable mistakes, from the supposition that they 
■were a body of the latter fish; and the large abundance of 
them thus collected may be judged of by the fact that on one 
occasion, twenty thousand, and on another, as I have been 
informed, sixty thousand were caught in a scan at one time. 

When thus assembled into what is termed a schuU, the fish 
of a given age or stage of growth are found to keep together 
in one body, and instances have occurred where a schuU of 
Chads' or Bream have been enclosed together in a scan, in near 
assemblage with a schull of Pilchards, without intermingling 
with them; under which chcumstances in the proceeding of the 
fishermen, termed tucking, which will be described when we 
give the Natural History of the Pilchard, it has happened that 
the boats have first been loaded with the last-named fishes; and 
when they have returned on the following day to obtain the 
supposed remainder of their prize, to their surprise and dis- 
appointment, they have found nothing to satisfy their hopes but 
to them a wortliless cargo of Breams or Chads. 

A story is known of an adventure of this kind, in which it 
would have been difficult to persuade the fishermen that some 
infernal agency had not been at work to disappoint their 
expectations, and rob them of their gain. A poor woman had 
gone to the sean boat to beg the gift of a few out of a suc- 
cessful capture of Pilchards; and usually such a request would 
not be preferred in vain. But on the present occasion she met 
a refusal, and after uttering some hasty and angry expressions, 
among which was a wish for their future ill-success, she went 
away disappointed. It happened that this poor old woman had 
some indefinite suspicions attached to her, as if she possessed 
an influence with the evil one, who would not be inattentive 
to her imprecations. A retuim to the sean, for the purpose of 
takin- up the remainder of the capture, confirmed the worst 
fears “of the fishermen; for, instead of the expected Pilchards, 
nothim- offered itself but an equal loading of Chads; with the 
accompaniment however of a drowned toad; which was imme- 
diately pronounced to be an unquestionable proof of the witch’s 
proceedings Nor did the result tend to lessen this impression. 


^40 


COMMON SEA BEEAM. 


One of the angry fishermen had taken the offending toad with 
him on his return; and he threw it with some exclamation into 
the house of the supposed agent of the evil one. It was during 
a war with France; and presently afterwards this man with 
others was taken prisoner hy the enemy. In an attempt to 
escape he fell before the balls of his guard, and he was the 
only one that did so. 

The Bream feeds on small fishes, crustacean animals, and 
sea-weeds, and it takes a bait freely; but it makes only a low 
price in the market; and when abundant I have known it sold 
for two shillings and sixpence the hundredweight. This un- 
worthy price, however, is not a criterion of its true value for 
the table; lor it is by no means to be disregarded as food, 
and Ilisso speaks favourably of it. But soon after it is caught 
it loses its freshness, and therefore will not bear that slow 
carriage which has been usual to a distant market. The rail- 
road will remove that difficulty, and convey a palatable food 
of moderate price to places at which before it was unknown. 



DENTITION OF THE COMMON SEA BREAM. 

A.— tipper jaw, within. E.— Tinder jaw, within. 

C. — Outside, side view. 




I 


1 



SHORT SEA bream. 

LVI 


241 


SHORT SEA BREAM. 

Pagellus Ctirtus , Zoologist; vol. ii., p. 394. 

“ “ Gunther’s Catalogue Br. Museum, 

vol. i., p. 377. 

On the 2nd. of September, 1843, a fisherman of Polperro 
took with one of his ordinary baits a Sea Bream, which he 
presently discerned never before to have laUen under his notice; 
and in consequence it was transferred to my possession as soon 
as he reached the land, which was before sufficient time had 
passed to allow it to undergo any change. At the first inspec- 
tion I was led to suppose that this example was nothing more 
than a deformed specimen of the Common Sea Bream; and 
such perhaps wiU he the opinion of some naturalists, until at 
least another example with similar characters is obtained, and 
renewed observation shall compel them to review their opinion. 
But for myself, on close examination, I found tliis example to 
differ in so many particulars besides its shortened form, that I 
was induced to believe it more probably a distinct species ; nor 
has the objection to this opinion appeared to me a very for- 
midable one, — that no more than a single specimen has come 
under the observation of naturalists; for the same remark may 
be made of other species of fishes midoubtedly distinct, but of 
which a single example only is on record. That no species 
nearly resembling it is described by former authors, however 
widely extended their observations, is only a proof of its rarity, 
and not of its behig an abnormal formation of nature. 

The length of this fish was fourteen inches, the greatest 
depth nine inches and a half; and in proportion to its kindred 
species the Common Sea Bream, it was of considerable thickness. 
Under jaw slightly the longest; tlie teeth in front and forward 
on the sides slight, conical, and somewhat scattered; gape 
moderate. Eye very large, being an inch and three fourths 
across; nostrils in a depression before the eyes, in this respect 


242 


SHOUT SEA liREAM. 


and in the cheeks for the most part resembling the Common 
Sea Bream; hut slightly differing in the markings of the head. 
The body thick and plump; scales on the cheeks and body 
large; those on the hinder part of the body, especially above 
the lateral line, having •well-marked festooned edges; those of 
the anterior part less regularly so. Lateral line at first mounting, 
arched, sinking opposite the ending of the dorsal and anal fins, 
waved in its course, and mounting again as it approaches the 
caudal fin: at its origin a large black spot. Pectoral fin very 
long, reaching to within a short distance of the termination of 
the anal fin; being in length four inches and three fourths, and 
passing two inches beyond the vent. Commencement of the 
dorsal fin just above the origin of the rays of the pectoral. 
Tail concave. The colour was much as in the Common Sea 
Bream, but more vivid; top of the head rich brown, the back 
scarlet, lighter on the side; belly white, with slight mottlings. 
Dorsal, pectoral, and caudal fins, and the inside of the mouth, 
vermilion; ventral and anal fins paler. 

Compared with the Common Sea Bream, laid by its side, 
besides the remarkable difierence of the dimensions, it was 
distinguished by a wider gape; by the teeth, although alike in 
arrangement and structm-e, less tliickly placed, especially the 
incisors; by a less rounded muzzle, a much larger eye, and 
longer pectoral fins; which being more arched, are differently 
shaped. In a Common Bream of the same length these fins 
measured three inches and three fourths. The scales also were 
more decidedly waved at their edge. In the stomach I found 
a Comatula and the bait with which it was taken, which was 
a slice of fish; but in the lower intestine were pieces of brown 
sea-weeds covered with Flustrca, (encrusting corals,) still 
continuing imdigested. 

Fin rays — pectoral fifteen, dorsal twelve and twelve, ventral 
one and five, anal three and thirteen, caudal about twenty 



Scales of the Short Sea Bream. 



i. 






I' 


G t L T H B A D. 



243 


CHEYSOPHEYS. 

With round molar teeth on the sides of the jaw, forming three rows 
in the upper; a few conical teeth in front. 


GILTHEAD. 


Awraia, 

Spams aiimia, 

ft ti 

Spare Doi-ade, 
Ohrysoplmjs aurata. 


JoNSTON; Tab. 16, f. 2. 

WiLLOUSHBY; p. 307, Tab. v. 5. 

Linn.®tjs. Fleming; Br. An., p. 211. 
Jenyns; Manual, p. 353. 

Lacepede. Eisso. 

CuviEE. Yaeeell; Br. F., vol. i, p. 111. 


This fish is well known in the Mediterranean, and it 
appears from Pliny and Columella that it was held in much 
esteem for the tables of ancient Eome, for the supply of which 
it was kept in ponds, and fed with oysters to give it a better 
appearance and fiavour; and in Martial’s opinion it was only 
when thus fed that it became worthy of notice: 


“Non omnis laudem pretiumquo Aurata merotur; 
Sed cui solus crib conclia Lncrina cibus.” 

Xenia. 

The Gilthead only shall my jiraisc partake 
When fed with shell-fish from the Lucrino lake. 


And shell-fish, with crabs, were supposed to be its chief or 
only food in its free condition, the solid structure of its teeth 
being well fitted to crush them in such a way as to be fit 
for digestion. 

The Gilthead does not often wander so far north as the 
British Islands, although examples have been met with in 
Cornwall and Devonshire, and Dr. Fleming obtained one so 
far north as the mouth of the Kiver Tay, in Scotland. Mr. 

VOL. I. 2 M 


244 


GILl'HEAD. 


Cocks, of Falmouth, has met with a couple of these fishes in 
the fish-market of that town, and his remarks on them were, 
— that one was fat, and rich in colour, the length sixteen 
inches and a half, the breadth six inches ; the second appeared 
sickly, the mouth small, lips pouting and livid, the colour like 
tarnished silver. 

This fish is said to he highly sensible of the impressions 
of much heat and cold, so that when these prevail it retires 
to deeper water j and, according to Pliny, this retreat, in the 
heat of summer, lasts for sixty days. 

^lian represents it as among the most timid of fishes; and 
he gives as a reason for this opinion, that they were stopped 
and caught at the retreat of the tide by a circle of hushes 
stuck upright in the sand, through which they were afraid to 
urge their way. This, it seems, was a mode of fishing adopted 
on the shores of Greece at such times as there was some 
recess of the tide, so that when the sea again ebbed the fish 
were left dry on the shore; and sometlring similar to it is 
practised at this time on shelving shores even in our own 
country. 

The relative dimensions of a British example have already 
been given, but somethnes it is found of a much larger size, 
so as even to approach to the weight of ten pounds. In its 
general outline it bears no distant resemblance to the Common 
Sea Bream, but with a little more prominence of profile. 
Willoughby has noticed that it is thin at the back, and 
Linneeus has copied this particular into his specific character. 
But it is particularly distinguished by its colours, of which 
Lacepede has afforded a glowing description. It shines, says 
he, with the mild lustre of silver and sky blue, the latter, 
which is the colour of its back, being more heightened by 
the silvery tints which arc spread over the rest of its body; 
and both these colours arc rendered the more conspicuous by 
the black of the dorsal and caudal fins, as well as by the 
longitudinal brown lines which pass along the sides. A golden 
hdf circle appears above the eyes, with the concavity directed 
backward; and a dash of black on the gill-cover and origin 
of the tail, form a beautiful contrast with the silver of the 
scales, while a third spot of a similiar kind, but of lively and 
variegated red rests a little above the root of the pectoral tins. 


GILTHEAD. 


245 


These beautiful colours are described in somewhat similar, 
although more subdued terms, by Willoughby and Risso; but 
they may be expected to be far more faint when this fish 
comes to our coasts, if they be not then altogether changed 
in their aspect. There are, indeed, two species of this genus 
closely allied to each other, which are inhabitants of the 
Mediterranean, not readily to be distinguished, and both of 
them may, perhaps, be found to pay us an accidental visit. 
But, however this may be, I find it difiicult, on the score of 
colour alone, to assign to either of them the species of which 
the figure is here given, but which is a correct representation 
of an example which fell under my own inspection speedily 
after it was taken from the sea. The form and arrangement 
of the teeth are proofs of its bemg a member of this genus; 
of which no more than the two species above referred to have 
been recognised in Europe. 

Fin rays — dorsal eleven spinous and fourteen soft, pectoral 
sixteen, ventral one spinous and five soft, anal thiee spinous 
and twelve soft, caudal seventeen. 


END OF VOL. I. 


B. Fau'cett, Engraver and Printer^ East Lodge, Driffield. 


« 





1 

'm 







January, 1884. 


GEORGE BELL & SONS’ 

LIST OF WORKS 

ON 

BOTANY & NATURAL HISTORY. 


THE LIBRARY OF NATURAL HISTORY. 

T his uniform series of Works on the various branches of Natural History 
has attained a high reputation, both for the low prices at winch 
they are published and the general excellence with which they are produced. 
They tbrin collectively a Standard Set of Works on the different subjects which 
they illustrate, and deserve the attention of all who study this branch of science 
for their faithful illustrations and accuracy of description; the plates being 
carefully executed by accomplished artists, and the authorship entrusted to writers 
of acknowledged merit. Indeed 110 higher testimony can be borne to their 
value than the fact that the late Prince Consort (himself an able student of 
Natural History) so highly esteemed those which were published during his life- 
time that he purchased copies of them for presentation to public institutions. 


New Edition, with Additions. 

DEniCATED BT Pbemission TO Hee Mqst Gbacious Majesty the Queen. 

A HISTOEY OF BEITISH BIEDS. 

Bv the Rev. E. 0. Mokeis, B.A., Member of the Ashmolcan Society. Illus- 
trated with 365 coloured Engravings. Six Yolumcs, super-royal 8vo., 
£6 6s. 

In this work the author has amassed information from cveij reliable source, and 
in addh ion to necessary scientific details, he has interspersed throughout his pages 
a vaTfund of anecdotes, inustrative of the mai-vellous mstmeU ^_d peculiar habits 
of the Shered inhabitants of our land, and has thus made hm work at once 
entertaining ^d instructive, and in the widest sense a ‘History of British Birds. 

New Edition, Enlarged. 

A NATUEAL HISTOEY OF THE NESTS AND EGGS OF 

BRITISH BIRDS. By the Rev^ E. 0. Monnis, B. A Ulustra cd with 

233 coloured Plates. In Three Yolumcs, super-royal 8vo., ±3 3s. 

■ j 1 tn the ‘History of British Birds,’ this work gives the 

Designed as a iocalitie7 and construction of their nests, the 

fullest infoi-mation S - instruction requisite for deter- 

number and peculiarities o . ; ^ Each egg is figm-cd and minutely described, 

mining tn what species they belong. Jtacn egg is ug j 

and a number of nests are accurately drawm from specimens. 


A New and Eevised Edition now ready. 


A HISTORY OF THE BIRDS OF EUROPE, 

NOT OBSEEYED IN THE BEITISH ISLES. By C. E. Beee, M.D., 
E.Z.S. niustrated with 238 coloured Plates of Birds and Eggs. In 
Eive Volumes, super-royal 8vo., £5 5a. 

This work forms an appropriate supplement to Morris, Yarrell, or any other work on 
British Birds, and with any of them forms a comprehensive account of the Ornithology 
of Europe. In addition to the personal ability of the Author for his task, he has had 
the assistance of many eminent Continental naturalists, among whom are Professors 
Blasius of Brunswick, Schlegel of Leyden, M. de Selys-Longchamps, and M. Moqmn- 
Tandon. 

‘Dr Breo is favourably known to ornithologists by numerous contributions to our zoological 
periodicals in all of which there is found the same genial spirit, and the same tone of good 
feeling kindliness, and reverence, which pervade the present work. . . . The figures are, for 
the most part, highly satisfactory, and leave us in wonder how they could be produced, m 
combinatiou with the full and copious text, for so small a yrice.’—Athenceum,. 


New Edition, Enlarged. 

A HISTORY OF BRITISH BUTTERFLIES. 

By the Eey. E. 0. Moeeis, B.A. Illustrated with 72 boautifuEy-coloured 
Plates. In One Volume, super-royal 8ro., price £1 Is. 

With coloured illustrations of all the species, and separate figures of the male 
and female, where there is any obvious difference between them, and also of the 
under side, together with the Caterpillar and Chrysalis ; and a full description of 
each, with copious accounts of their several liabits, localities, and times of appear- 
ance, together with details as to their preservation, etc., with new and valuable 
information — the result of the author’s experience for many years. 


A NATURAL HISTORY OF BRITISH MOTHS. 

Accurately delineating every known species, with the English as woE as 
the scientific names, accompanied by fuE descriptions, date of appearance, 
Ests of the locaEties they haunt, their food in the caterpillar state, and 
other features of their habits and modes of existence, &c. By the Eev. 
E. 0. Moeeis, B.A. The Plates contain nearly 2,000 exquisitely coloured 
Specimens. In Eom- Volumes, royal 8vo., price £6 6s. 

‘Speaking of entomology, we should place Mr. Morris’ “History of British Moths” at the head. 
It gives a coloured figure of every known British moth, together with dates of appearance, 
localities, description, and food of cate^iillar. It forms a handsome work for a libraiy, and will, 
we should hope, lead many to commence the fascinating study of entomology.’ — I'he Jiecord. 

‘We can easily imagine that the anuonneement of the publication of a “Hatunal History of 
British Moths” will awaken a strong desire in many of our readers to become possessed of_so 
desirable a treatise. There are probably some thousands, especially among tlie younger portion 
of our population, who pay a little attention to entomology, and of tliese by far the greater 
number devote tbeir energies to the study of the butterflies and moths, the two great groups of 
insects forming the order Lepidoptera of entomologists. To these, if we may judge from the 
recoUectioiis of our own early feelings, no present could be more welcome than a good “Natural 
History of British Moths.” The UlnstratiouB are exceedingly numerous, occupying no fewer 
than 132 plates, and including a figure of every species, and in some cases of the xirincipal 
varieties. The figures are generally exceedingly well executed and life-like; they are all coloured, 
and will doubtless afford great assistance to many a coUecter in naming his captures .’ — The 
Spectator. 



BEAUTIFUL-LEAVED PLANTS. 

DescriHiio- the most beautiful-leaved Plants in cultivation in this country. 
By E. J. Loave, Esq., E.ll.S., E.E.A.S., assisted by Howaed, E.H.S. 
Illustrated with 60 coloured Illustrations. In One Yolume, super-royal 
8vo., price f'l Is. 

‘In tliia volume wo have a description of a large number of stovo, conservatqiy, and garden 
nl-ints cultivated in thia country, of which the leaves rather than the flowere are objects of interest. 
The Dxciidsitc and delicate forms of many ora.amontal pbinta common to the hothouses and green- 
honsef rf irwcmlthrai^^ depifted, with wonderful fideUty, in a series of beautiful 
illustrations in the n.atural colour of the plants.’— ne Bookseller. 

NEW AND RARE BEAUTIFUL-LEAVED PLANTS. 

By Shielky Hibbekd, F.E.H.S. Illustrated with 54 coloured Engravings. 
In One Yolume, super-royal 8vo., price £1 5s. 

‘A bit of information as to the pictures maybe acceptable. _ First, observe the tinting of the 
leaves and the sroiindworlc of such a subject as Solanum margmeUum as a sample of the whole. 
Then accent the information that these pictures are not chromo-lithographs, not coloured by hand , 

itien acoepc ,,,,,1 wn irnnirbiB. blit cannot of course express any 

1 State of an important 
■'’romeZe. 

OUR NATIVE PERNS AND THEIR VARIETIES. 

By E. J. Lowe, Esq., E.E.S., E.E.A.S., &c. niustrated with 79 coloured 
Plates and 909 lYood Engravings. In Two Yolumos, royal 8vo., pneo £2 2s. 

The importance and value of this work may be inferred from the fact that it 
contains descriptions of 1294 varieties of British Eerns, with seventy-nine coloured 
plates of species and varieties, and 909 wood eugravmgs. The descriptions are 
written in a popular manner, containing much interesting information. The localities 
are described, each synonym given, and a descnntion of the proper method of 
cultivation. To show the extent and value of the illustrations it may be mentioned, 
that of Scolopendrimi vulgare alone there arc one hundred and eighty-four varieties 
figured. 

NATURAL HISTORY OF BRITISH AND EXOTIC FERNS 

Bv E J Lowe, Esq., F.E.S., F.E.A.8., &c. Illustrated with 479 finely 
coloured Plates. In Eight Yolnmes, super-royal 8vo., price £6 6s. 

1 , V V i.;b 1, =l,r,nld contain ample mc.au 9 of studying and identifying the Exotic species 
‘A hook wluch shoiilil oonta n i hitherto been a desideratum. This want the 

accessible to pemona of , ,, It, is admirably “got up;” the plates are care- 

present work promises mMt hope ly ^ woodcut at the head of each description, 

fully and prettily t^em is deficient in scientific accuracy. It is 

and the letterpress 'excSlen^ we have ever seen, and should bo “in the bands 

S every yr&tnd eve, fprw who cultivates these charming objects. ’-Athenarcm 

A NATURAL HISTORY OF NEW AND RARE FERNS. 

Ci .1 • ■ „ ciriociVs and Yarieties not included in ‘Ferns, Bntish and 
“c" SvT l rowEjEsQ., F.E.S., F.E.A.S &c^ Illustrated with 
72 coloured Plates and numerous Woodcuts. In One Yolume, super-royal 

8vO., piico £1 ■Rvitish and Exotic Ferns” contains coloured illustrationf 

‘Altliough the “Natural cultivated in this countiy, atUl so many new 

of between five and six i,een deemed necessary to publish a separate volume, 

ones liavo been introduced, “‘W, , dates or woodcut illustrations of one hundred 

Tills work wUl be found to _ of Secies that liave been already figured in the 

and fifty-one new species, or new vaiietiea o p 

preceding volumea/— 


( 4 ) 


A NATUEAL HISTORY OP BRITISH GRASSES. 

By E. J. Lowe, Esq., E.E.S., E.ll.A.S., &o. Illustrated with 74 finely- 
coloured Plates. In One Volume, super-royal 8to., price £1 Is. 

This is a work not only valuable to the botanical student for its pictorial 
accuracy, but of use also to the landed proprietor and the farmer, pointing out 
to them those gi’asses which arc useful and lucrative in husbandry, and teaching 
them the varied soils and positions upon which they thrive, and explaining their 
qualities and the several uses to which they are applied in many branches of 
manufacture and industry. There is much interesting matter also in this volume 
appertaining to the ancient customs and superstitions connected with the subject, 
which the author brings before his reader in a forcible rather than in a prolix 
style. 

‘It is veiy faithful, and marvellously cheap, considering the beautiful manner in which it is 
produced .’ — Literary Recm-d. 

MAUND’S BOTANIC GARDEN. 

Consisting of highly-finished Eigures of Hardy Ornamental Elowering 
Plants Cultivated in Great Britain, with their Hames, Orders, History, 
Qualities, Culture, and Phy.siological Observations. By B. Matjud, E.L.S. 
Hew Edition, edited by .Tames C. Hivejt, Curator of the Botanic Gardens, 
Hull. With 250 Coloured Plates, giving 1247 figures. In Six Volumes, 
super-royal 8vo., £12 12s. 

BRITISH SEA-WEEDS. 

Drawn from Professor Harvey’s ‘Phycologia Britannica.’ With Descriptions, 
an Amateur’s Synopsis, Rules for Laying on Sea-weeds, an Order for 
Arranging them in the Herbarium, and an Appendix of Hew Species. By 
Mrs. AiEfiED Gattt. Illustrated with 80 coloured Plates, containing 384 
figures. In Two Volumes, super-royal 8vo., price £2 lOs. 

‘Those who are acquriiDted with TVtrs. Gatty’s “Parables from and especially with 

her delightful Parable about “Red Snow/' need not be told that the literary part has been 
ably executed by a ci>mpetent and loving observer. In her present work she has endeavoured, 
and we think iriost suci^essfully, to translate the terms and phrases of science into the language 
of amateurs. Mrs, Gatty’a familiarity with the plants themselves has enabled her to do this 
office without falling into the errors to which a mere compiler iu separating from the beaten 
track would be liable.’ — Gardeners' Chronicle, 


ALPINE PLANTS. 

Doseriptions and 103 accurately-coloured Eigures (drawn and engraved ex- 
pressly for this Work) of some of the most striking and beautiful of the 
Alpine Elowers. Edited by David Wooster, joint editor of the latest 
editions of Loudon’s ‘ Encyclopa’dias of Gardening and Plants,’ ‘Hortus 
Britaiiiiious,’ &e. In One Volume, supor-royal 8vo., price £1 5s. 

‘The manner in which “Alpine Plante” is pi-oduced is creditahle alike to author and artist. 
The literaiT portion is not the mere dry botanical descriptions often found in such works, but 
a popular description of the plant, instructions a-s to its culture and treatment, with any iu- 
terestiug information in connexion witli it that can be obtaiued. . . . We heartily commend 
this work to all lovers of flowers.’— ./ omckuI of Jlurtimltm-e. 

‘Not least among the illustrated Christmas books should be reckoned this interesting work 
with its beautifully coloured specimens .’ — Saturday Review. 

‘ The letterpress is full, no doubt, of the most accurate botanical learning, but what we have to 
speak of more partioul.'iriy are the illustrations, and these strike us as among the best specimens of 
wood-block printing. There is about them none of that plastered gaiicliness, that thick and sticky 
style in which too often the wood-engraver endeavours to paint the lily. A crocus seems just to 
have thrust itself through the brown aoU which the thaw has softened.’— ITtMew, 


ALPINE PLANTS. 

Seconb Series. Containing Eifty-four Coloured Plates, witli one or two 
Figures on each Plate. Descriptions and aocnratoly-ooloured Figures 
(drawn and engraved expressly for this Work) of tho most striking and 
beautiful of the Alpine Plants. Edited by David Woostek. Price £1 6s. 

BRITISH MOSSES. 

Their Homes, Aspects, Structure, and Uses. Containing a Coloured Figure 
of each species, etched from Nature. By F. E. Tripp. Illustrated with 39 
beautifully-coloured Plates. In Two Volumes, super-royal 8vo., £2 10s. 

‘It is a book to read, to ponder, to mark, learn, and inwardly digest. . . . Let those who want to 
know the “moral” of mosses enquire vnthin the covers of the volume. He will thei^ find that 
these humble plants have their uses, their virtues, and their mission .' — Morning AdvQrii&cr. 

HISTORY OF THE FISHES OF THE BRITISH ISLANDS. 

By Jonathan Couch, F.I^.S.. Illustrated with 256 carefully coloured 
Tlates. New Edition, in Four Volumes, super-royal 8vo., price £l 4s. 

‘The author, who is well known as one of the first practical authorities on British fishes, 
has for fifty years been obseiwing, noting, atid drawing, with his own pencil, the va>ious fish 
which live in British waters— a vast labour, in which he has been assisted by sonentific friends 
living in various portions of the United Kingdom. Tho drawings are beautifiilly coloured^ to 
life, and some of the portraits (especially of the dog-fish) are really marvellous, rendering 
the’ recognition of a fish a work of the gi-eatest ease.'— TAe Field. 


SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY: 


Containing a Description and Life-size coloured Drawing of every British 
Plant. Edited and brought up to the Present Standard of Scientific 
Knowledge by T. Boswell, (formerly Syme,) LL.D. F.L.S. &c. With 
Popular Descriptions of tbo Uses, History, and Iraditions of each 1 lant, by 
Mi4. Lankestek, Author of ‘Wild Flowers Worth Notice,’ ‘The British 
Ferns’ &c The Figures by J. E. Sowekbt, James Sowerbt, F.L.S., 
J. De C. Sowerby, F.L.S., and J. AV. Salter, A.L.S. In Eleven Volumes, 
with 1824 full-page coloured plates, super-royal 8vo. {For prices see p. 7.) 
A''ol. XII. containing the Cryptogamons Plants anil an Index to the whole 
work. In Seven Parts, 6s. each. Fart 1. immediately. 


‘Under the editoi-Bhip of T. Boswell Symo, F.LS., asrfsted by Wra-LankeBter,') Sowerby a 
Pn<d£b Bomnt ” when finished, wUl be cKbanative of the subjeot, and worthy ot the br,anch 
BngliBti Botany, oyer the charmingly exeonted luind-ooloured plates 

ofSrpli wMch •enoumbeYthc^e volmnos with pchA^ho reader cannot .Imlp being 

Ifcndtlf tae beauty of many of the ^-ttyiSlT“?ou 7 oti:' thl^"^^ 

step, ffc if wm b““ent f^aTate that the 'work is pleigedto 

flowers presented m tnaae pagea, ami ii y,.. m. ..y , 7 ,;,,, Times 

contain a figure of every wild flower indigenous to these isles. -Urn Iwiu. 

a Idl'cl X7fe7bftaifirscfenol7 cuSed,7nf thiftuSf of ^fnSife iZL,7hh7u 
their faEcinatiug associations, held dear. —Amnceuni. 

,,.r .V . J oTid irciiracv of the coloured figures. They are drawn 

‘Nothing can exceed the beauty ‘ -im'ifceur will recognise who has vainly puzzled over 
life-aize-im advantage winch enriched with delicate delinea- 

wh\c?"AppcnI to be remarkable in its form-and 


not a few plates are altogether new. ... A clear, hold distinotiye type enables the reader 
to take in at a glance the arrangement and divisions of every page. And Mrs. Lankester 
has added to the technical description by the editor an extremely interesting popular sketch, 
which follows in smaller type. The English, French, and German popular^ u.ames are given, 
and, wherever that delicate and diflicult step is at all jjracticable, their derivation also. 
Medical properties, Bupcrstltions, and fancies, and poetic tributes and illusions, foUow. In 
short, there is nothing more left to be desmed.’ — GuanUan, 

‘Without question, this is the standard work on Botany, and indispensable to every 
botanist. . . . The plates are most accurate and beautiful, and the entire work cannot be 
too strongly recommended to all who are interested in Botany ,’ — Illustrated News. 

SOWEEBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. I. contains— 

All the Plants ranked under the orders Eanuiiculacese, Berberidacese, 
NymphseaceiB, Papaveracete, and Cruciferse. 

SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. 11. contains— 

All the plants ranked under the orders Resedaceie, Cistacese, Violacese, 
Droserace®, Polygalace®, Prankeniace®, Carophyllace®, Portulacace®, 
Tamariscace®, Elatinace®, Hypericace®, Malvace®, Tiliace®, Linaee®, 
Geraniace®, Ilieine®, Celastraoe®, Ehamnacc®, Sapindace®. 

SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. III. contains— 

All the Plants ranked under the orders Leguminifer® and Eosace®. 

SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. IV. contains— 

All the Plants ranked under the orders Lythrace®, Onagrace®, Cucur- 
bitaee®, Grossulariace®, Crassulaee®, Saxifragace®, Umbillifer®, Araliace®, 
Cornace®, Loranthace®, Caprifoliace®, Eubiace®, Valerianaee®, and Dip- 
saee®. 

SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. V. contains — 

All the Plants ranked under the order Composit®. 

SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. VI. contains — 

All the Plants ranked under the orders Campanulaee®, Ericace®, Jas- 
minace®, Apoeynace®, Gentianaee®, Polemoniaee®, Convolvulace®, Sola- 
naee®, Scrophulariacc®, Orobanohaee®, and Verbenace®. 

SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. VII. contains— 

All the Plants ranked under the orders Labiat®, Boraginace®, Lentibu- 
lariace®, Primulace®, Plumbaginace®, Plantaginace®, Paronychiace®, and 
Amarantace®. 

SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. VIII. contains— 

All the Plants ranked under the orders Chenopodiace®, Polygonace®, 
Eleganace®, Thymelace®, Sant.alace®, Aristolochiace®, Empetrace®, Eu- 
phorbiace®, Callitrlehace®, Ceratophyllace®, Urticaoe®, Amentifer®, .and 
Conifer®. 


SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. IX. contains — 

All the Plants ranked under the orders Typhacese, Araceaj, Lemnacese, 
Naiadace®, Alismace®, Hydrocharidace®, Orchidace®, Irid®ce®, Amarylli- 
daee®, Diascoreaoe®, and LiHace®. 

SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. X. contains — 

All the Plants ranked under the orders Juncace® and Cyperace®. 

SOWERBY’S ENGLISH BOTANY, Vol. XI. contains — 

All the Plants ranked under the order Graminaoe®. 



THE PEICES OP 

THE VOLUMES 

ABE- 






Bound cloth. 

Half morocco. 

Morocco elegant. 



£ 

s. 

d. 

£ 

s. 

d. 

£ 

s. 

d. 

Vol. 1. 

(Seven Parts) 

.. 1 

18 

0 

2 

2 

0 

2 

8 

6 

Vol. 2. 

ditto 

.. 1 

18 

0 

2 

2 

0 

2 

8 

6 

Vol. 3. 

(Eight Parts) ... 

.. 2 

3 

0 

2 

7 

0 

2 

13 

6 

Vol. 4. 

(Nine Parte) 

.. 2 

8 

0 

2 

12 

0 

2 

18 

6 

Vol. 5. 

(Eight Parts) 

.. 2 

3 

0 

2 

7 

0 

2 

13 

6 

Vol. 6. 

(Seven Parts) 

.. 1 

18 

0 

2 

2 

0 

2 

8 

6 

Vol. 7. 

ditto 

... 1 

18 

0 

2 

2 

0 

2 

8 

6 

Vol. 8. 

(Ten Parts) 

.. 2 

13 

0 

2 

17 

0 

3 

3 

6 

Vol. 9. 

(Seven Parts) 

... 1 

18 

0 

2 

2 

0 

2 

8 

G 

Vol. 10. 

ditto 

... 1 

18 

0 

2 

2 

0 

2 

8 

6 

Vol. 11. 

(Six Parts) 

... 1 

13 

0 

1 17 

0 

2 

3 

6 


Or, the Eleven Volumes, £22 8s. in cloth; £24 12s. in half morocco; and 
£28 3s. 6d. whole morocco. Also in 83 Parte, 5s. each. 

A Supplementary Volume, containing Ferns and other Cryptogam!, in pre- 
paration by Peoi'essou Boswell (formerly Syme.) 


THE COTTAGE-GARDENER’S DICTIONARY. 

Describing the Plants, Fruits, and Vegetables desirable for the Garden, 
and explaining the Terms and Operations employed m their cultiTOtion. 
With a Supplement containing all the new Plants and Vaneties to the 
year 1881. Edited by GeohOE W. JoHifSOir, Editor of the Journal of 
Horticulture and Cottage Gardener.’ Post 8vo., cloth, 7s. 6d. The Sup- 
plement separately, sewed. Is. Gd. 

. u f-vh,. .h. 

•" “ SiA-s.is.tv r. 

intclligont knowledge of eontaina descripliona and illu-atrations of preda- 

growtll of plante, frui f, and vegetables and ^Tho editor bas bad the advantage 

tory insects, wliicb wdl be found m , _ . B , number of practical and scientific gardeners 

iilssfSw iirrisLt ”£ » "•> « 

tbeorlst conld pretend to give.’— IbWc*. i i,' i, t. 

. , - tben must tbis dictionary be said to rank bigh. It 

‘If oopiousuoss be a lexicographical m , mjacellaneons essays .are numerous and the work 
is literally cram ful of mfoirnation. • t ' . may believe the editor when ho states 


RAMBLES IN SEARCH OP WILD FLOWERS, and How to 
Distinguish Them. 

By Maeoaeet Flues, Author of ‘Eambles in Search of Flowerless Plants,’ 
‘British Grasses,’ &c. With 96 coloured figures and numerous cuts. Third 
Edition, large post 8vo., 7s. 6d. 

‘This little book has already, we are pleased to note, attained its third edition. We sineerely 
wish it that continuance of public favour which it so well deserves .’ — Saturday Review. 


MRS. LOUDON’S FIRST BOOK OP BOTANY. 

Being a Plain and Brief Introduction to that Science for Schools and 
Young People. New Edition, revised and enlarged, by David Wooster, 
joint editor of Loudon’s ‘Encyclopaedia of Plants,’ Loudon’s ‘Hortus 
Britannicus,’ &c., with numerous Engravings. Pcap. 8vo. 2s. 6d. 

Contents: — Chap. I. On the Elementary Organs of Plants. — Chap. II. 
The Parts into which Plants are Divided by Botanists.- — Cliap. III. The 
Natural Divisions of Plants. — Chap. IV. Botanical Classifications. — Index and 
Glossary. 


THE BOTANIST’S POCKET-BOOK. 

By W. 11. Hatwaed. Containing, arranged in a tabulated form, the chief 
characteristics of British Plants. Fcap. 8vo. flexible binding for the 
pocket. Third Edition Ilevised, 4s, 6<1. 

This Volume is intended as a handy Pocket Companion for the Botanist in the 
field, and will ciiuhlo him to identity on the spot the plants he may meet with 
in his researches. Besides the characteristics of species and varieties, it contains 
the Botanic al name, Common name, Soil or Situation, Colour, Growth, and time 
of Flowering of every plant, arranged under its own order. 

‘A book of modest pretensions and not without its value. . . . Occupying not much over 
two hundred pages of paper in limp cloth binding, it will be no great burden to the pocket 
or knapsack, and may froquently he usefully resorted to by a young botanist on the tramp, 
leaving moi-e careful study till lie gets home.’ — Nature, 

‘The diagnoses seem framed with considerable care and judgment, the characteristics having 
been well selected and contra.sted .’ — Journal of Botany. 


MY GARDEN: ITS PLAN AND CULTURE. 

Together w'ith a General Description of its Geology, Botany, and Natural 
History. By the late Aleeei) Smee, F.R.S. Illustrated with more than 
1500 Engravings on Wood. Second Edition, revised, imperial 8vo. 21s. 

‘Mr. Smee seems to be a gardener of tbe true school. His tastes lead him to cultivate almost 
every kind of hardy plants, and there are so many pretty fibres of these in his pages as to 

make the book worth having for their sakes alone As a sort of recital of the pure 

pleasure and interest which even an otherwise busily occupied gentleman may derive from his 
garden, the book is of much value.’— /Ve/d. 

‘As for the illustrations they are simply perfect.. ..Lovers of gardens and lovers of art 

will join in prizing tliis book and in gratitude to Mr. Smee and to those who have so ably 
and faithfully seconded hia aim.’ — Graphic, 

‘This book has tbe merit of careful observation and a love for the common objects of 

nature which are too often disregarded because they are common .’ — Pall Mall Gazette. 

‘Decidedly an interesting and useful work. It abounds in information on a variety of points 
which the lover of a good garden finds it necessary to know, but for which he does not know 
where to turn.’— Lancet. 


LONDOJ^: GEOEGE BELL & SOKS, YOHEl STEEET. COVEN T GAEDEN.